Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n king_n power_n regal_a 2,103 5 11.1413 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A35697 Jus regiminis, being a justification of defensive arms in general and consequently, of our revolutions and transactions to be the just right of the kingdom. Denton, William, 1605-1691. 1689 (1689) Wing D1067; ESTC R2231 155,945 104

There are 46 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

kingdom_n be_v devolve_v on_o one_o or_o more_o choose_v from_o among_o the_o govern_v if_o abuse_v natural_o return_v unto_o they_o again_o who_o by_o their_o good_a will_n pleasure_n and_o suffrage_n conditional_o confer_v it_o on_o they_o and_o they_o can_v divest_v themselves_o of_o it_o power_n from_o they_o who_o injure_v other_o by_o the_o most_o just_a law_n must_v pass_v unto_o they_o who_o suffer_v the_o injury_n for_o all_o man_n be_v equal_o tie_v by_o law_n than_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o just_a mortal_a god_n to_o do_v what_o they_o list_v without_o control_n there_o be_v none_o among_o we_o without_o all_o peradventure_o they_o who_o have_v right_a to_o constitute_v magistrate_n over_o themselves_o by_o devolve_v and_o deligate_a their_o own_o power_n on_o they_o to_o manage_v and_o govern_v they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o law_n to_o see_v they_o execute_v according_a to_o the_o simplicity_n and_o sincerity_n wherewith_o they_o be_v make_v without_o sham_n or_o trick_n or_o shape_a or_o wrest_v they_o to_o wrong_v end_n and_o purpose_n which_o they_o be_v oblige_v by_o oath_n the_o most_o sacred_a tie_n among_o mortal_n to_o observe_v to_o they_o of_o necessity_n and_o of_o just_a right_n do_v belong_v the_o right_n of_o examine_v and_o censure_v their_o action_n and_o of_o call_v they_o to_o a_o account_n and_o to_o deal_v with_o they_o according_o vide_fw-la judicium_fw-la lutheri_fw-la &_o theologorum_fw-la &_o i._n c._n wittiber-gentium_a de_fw-fr hac_fw-la questione_fw-la tom._n jenens_fw-la germ._n ap_fw-mi 384_o ad_fw-la p._n 396._o &_o martyr_n comm_n in_o cap._n 1._o jud._n p._n 37._o &_o cap._n 3._o p._n 60_o 61._o no_o law_n forbid_v it_o no_o law_n except_v they_o reason_n justice_n and_o god_n himself_o command_v all_o transgressor_n to_o be_v punish_v without_o respect_n or_o difference_n of_o person_n chap._n xiii_o duty_n of_o king_n who_o have_v authority_n from_o men._n the_o right_n of_o legislation_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god._n king_n accountable_a the_o law_n and_o practice_n of_o ancient_a kingdom_n roman_a grecian_a lacedaemonian_a carthaginian_a what_o severe_a law_n they_o make_v against_o arbitrary_a power_n if_o king_n do_v right_o consider_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v their_o own_o true_a interest_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o world_n and_o the_o next_o they_o will_v con_v their_o high_a prerogative-assertors_a very_a little_a thanks_o for_o such_o their_o exaltation_n thereof_o but_o will_v rather_o esteem_v they_o as_o the_o very_o worst_a friend_n they_o have_v for_o whilst_o they_o magnify_v kingly_a power_n unto_o the_o sky_n above_o the_o law_n and_o be_v not_o accountable_a for_o mal-government_n they_o thereby_o alarm_n their_o subject_n to_o awaken_v out_o of_o the_o suppose_a dream_n of_o their_o just_a liberty_n and_o interest_n and_o to_o provide_v for_o themselves_o and_o to_o shake_v off_o the_o bondage_n of_o such_o unlooked_a for_o servitude_n wherewith_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o surprise_v they_o by_o such_o doctrine_n and_o whilst_o they_o teach_v such_o infinite_a power_n to_o be_v the_o right_n of_o king_n they_o thereby_o render_v that_o power_n to_o be_v the_o more_o intolerable_a whilst_o they_o teach_v kingly_a power_n to_o be_v omnipotent_a they_o excite_v the_o people_n to_o throw_v it_o off_o rather_o than_o to_o submit_v to_o so_o unjust_a domination_n to_o be_v the_o right_n of_o king_n who_o they_o have_v set_v over_o themselves_o for_o their_o good_a and_o comfort_n and_o not_o for_o their_o vexation_n as_o all_o kingdom_n and_o republic_n have_v their_o authority_n in_o these_o our_o day_n by_o the_o law_n of_o man_n to_o govern_v so_o they_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o strict_a bond_n of_o divine_a and_o humane_a law_n to_o manage_v their_o government_n in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n observe_v his_o commandment_n in_o general_a to_o fear_v he_o to_o walk_v in_o all_o his_o way_n and_o to_o love_v he_o then_o to_o order_v the_o government_n aright_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o govern_v by_o well_o order_v of_o law_n according_a to_o their_o simple_a meaning_n and_o true_a intent_n without_o sham_v or_o trick_v exemplary_a encourage_n and_o exhort_v their_o subject_n to_o honesty_n piety_n and_o justice_n punish_v all_o such_o as_o transgress_v god_n commandment_n especial_o those_o of_o the_o decalogue_n for_o this_o power_n be_v not_o arbitrary_a nor_o give_v they_o for_o their_o own_o use_n only_o to_o manage_v as_o they_o please_v but_o for_o the_o good_a and_o benefit_n of_o the_o govern_v which_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man._n preachment_n and_o apprehension_n to_o the_o contrary_a may_v cause_v even_o saint_n to_o be_v misguide_v and_o to_o act_v beside_o their_o rule_n and_o to_o deem_v themselves_o arbitrator_n of_o the_o government_n wherewith_o they_o be_v entrust_v by_o the_o true_a patron_n thereof_o and_o confirm_v and_o ratify_v as_o necessary_a for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o govern_v by_o god_n himself_o for_o that_o over_o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n consist_v of_o many_o and_o sundry_a family_n as_o every_o politic_a society_n do_v impossible_a it_o be_v that_o any_o shall_v have_v complete_a lawful_a authority_n but_o by_o consent_n of_o man_n or_o immediate_a appointment_n of_o god_n who_o have_v power_n over_o all_o and_o who_o by_o the_o natural_a law_n have_v make_v all_o subject_n the_o lawful_a power_n of_o make_v law_n to_o command_v whole_a politic_a society_n of_o man_n belong_v so_o proper_o unto_o the_o same_o entire_a society_n that_o for_o any_o emperor_n prince_n potentate_n or_o captain_n general_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o on_o earth_n to_o exercise_v the_o same_o of_o himself_o or_o to_o act_v contrary_a to_o law_n make_v by_o public_a consent_n and_o not_o either_o by_o express_a commission_n immediate_o and_o personal_o receive_v from_o god_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v now_o utter_o impossible_a that_o any_o just_a pretence_n can_v be_v make_v or_o else_o by_o authority_n derive_v from_o their_o consent_n upon_o who_o person_n they_o impose_v law_n it_o be_v not_o better_a than_o down_o right_a tyranny_n law_n nor_o power_n there_o can_v be_v none_o lawful_a which_o public_a approbation_n have_v not_o make_v so_o and_o the_o public_a power_n of_o all_o society_n be_v above_o every_o individual_a contain_v in_o the_o same_o society_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o they_o be_v i_o may_v confident_o divine_a that_o no_o people_n ever_o be_v or_o ever_o will_v be_v well_o please_v with_o governor_n that_o mind_n more_o their_o own_o benefit_n pomp_n and_o pride_n of_o life_n than_o the_o good_a and_o solace_n of_o the_o govern_v it_o be_v the_o natural_a and_o fundamental_a right_n of_o the_o govern_v to_o deligate_v as_o much_o of_o their_o own_o power_n without_o divest_v themselves_o thereof_o as_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o king_n or_o republic_n subject_a nevertheless_o to_o the_o trust_v repose_v in_o they_o to_o be_v always_o improve_v and_o employ_v for_o the_o welfare_n of_o the_o govern_v all_o people_n general_o bear_v and_o be_v content_v with_o a_o moderate_a yoke_n but_o from_o too_o heavy_a a_o bondage_n all_o natural_o endeavour_v to_o free_v themselves_o by_o all_o mean_n though_o indirect_a the_o history_n of_o nodus_fw-la gordianus_n be_v applicable_a to_o all_o humane_a tie_n and_o obligation_n of_o government_n and_o sometime_o or_o other_o will_v have_v the_o same_o fate_n therefore_o it_o be_v very_o indiscreet_a zeal_n in_o any_o and_o much_o more_o in_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o preach_v up_o such_o prerogative_n to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o prince_n which_o be_v always_o prone_a to_o end_v in_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o in_o public_a confusion_n lycurgus_n a_o spartan_a king_n observe_v his_o neighbour_a prince_n struggle_v to_o get_v all_o power_n into_o their_o hand_n and_o thereby_o ruine_v themselves_o and_o their_o citizen_n he_o think_v it_o his_o wise_a course_n to_o take_v the_o senate_n to_o be_v his_o consort_n in_o government_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o ephori_fw-la as_o a_o check_n upon_o himself_o whereby_o he_o establish_v and_o transmit_v a_o firm_a kingdom_n to_o himself_o and_o his_o successor_n for_o many_o generation_n likewise_o the_o moderation_n of_o theopompus_n king_n of_o the_o lacedaemonian_n who_o live_v more_o than_o one_o hundred_o year_n after_o lycurgus_n be_v such_o that_o he_o constitute_v the_o popular_a government_n of_o the_o ephori_fw-la above_o his_o own_o regal_a power_n and_o glory_v that_o he_o have_v leave_v and_o establish_v a_o more_o firm_a and_o durable_a kingdom_n to_o his_o child_n and_o posterity_n no_o inconsiderable_a example_n if_o right_o consider_v nor_o unworthy_a to_o be_v imitate_v no_o law_n ever_o establish_v one_o man_n king_n and_o lord_n above_o all_o law_n neither_o can_v they_o
law_n or_o prevaricate_a with_o false_a construction_n of_o law_n or_o by_o innuendo_n lest_o thereby_o the_o life_n and_o fortune_n of_o your_o subject_n be_v take_v away_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v your_o wisdom_n and_o your_o understanding_n and_o all_o your_o people_n will_v call_v you_o bless_v and_o it_o will_v be_v your_o comfort_n at_o the_o end_n of_o your_o day_n a_o time_n speedy_o approach_v when_o all_o crown_n sceptre_n and_o royalty_n must_v be_v resign_v to_o god_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o man_n when_o you_o shall_v all_o stand_v in_o a_o equal_a distance_n with_o those_o you_o now_o call_v vassal_n and_o use_v rather_o like_v beast_n than_o image_n of_o god_n and_o christian_n before_o his_o tribunal_n when_o no_o title_n of_o honour_n no_o eminency_n of_o station_n no_o treasure_n of_o wealth_n no_o strength_n of_o army_n or_o dependency_n will_v accompany_v any_o of_o you_o into_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lamb_n to_o stand_v between_o you_o and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n for_o god_n be_v no_o respecter_n of_o person_n and_o will_v not_o be_v mock_v be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o o_o you_o king_n even_o to_o day_n whilst_o it_o be_v call_v to_o day_n before_o the_o irreversible_a decree_n of_o wrath_n be_v go_v forth_o and_o esteem_v that_o lex_fw-la regius_fw-la all_o his_o other_o law_n statute_n and_o judgement_n more_o than_o your_o necessary_a food_n and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v sweet_a to_o you_o than_o the_o honey_n and_o the_o hony-comb_n lay_v they_o up_o in_o your_o heart_n and_o in_o your_o soul_n bind_v they_o for_o a_o sign_n upon_o you_o hand_n that_o they_o may_v be_v as_o frontlet_n between_o your_o eye_n that_o you_o may_v teach_v they_o to_o your_o subject_n as_o be_v command_v to_o josiah_n deut._n 17._o 17._o speak_v of_o they_o when_o you_o sit_v in_o your_o house_n and_o when_o you_o walk_v by_o the_o way_n when_o you_o lie_v down_o and_o when_o you_o rise_v up_o write_v they_o upon_o the_o door-post_n of_o your_o house_n and_o upon_o your_o gate_n bind_v they_o upon_o your_o heart_n and_o tie_v they_o about_o your_o neck_n and_o make_v they_o your_o continual_a ornament_n that_o when_o you_o go_v they_o may_v lead_v you_o that_o when_o you_o sleep_v they_o may_v keep_v you_o and_o that_o when_o you_o awake_v they_o may_v talk_v with_o you_o and_o teach_v you_o to_o keep_v sound_a wisdom_n and_o discretion_n that_o in_o all_o your_o way_n and_o condition_n they_o may_v be_v your_o safeguard_n your_o companion_n and_o your_o comfort_n be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o o_o you_o king_n be_v instruct_v you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n let_v your_o provident_a care_n reach_v beyond_o the_o forecast_n of_o the_o fool_n in_o the_o gospel_n even_o for_o immortality_n itself_o make_v no_o provision_n for_o the_o flesh_n to_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n thereof_o for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o thing_n only_o necessary_a do_v not_o desperate_o slight_a and_o condemn_v the_o purity_n and_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o abstain_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_n and_o resist_v unto_o blood_n strive_v against_o sin_n be_v not_o like_o those_o fool_n that_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o sin_n and_o so_o curse_o cruel_a to_o your_o immortal_a soul_n as_o to_o dote_v on_o mediocrity_n of_o grace_n by_o understanding_n god_n otherways_o then_o he_o will_v be_v understand_v and_o so_o delude_v your_o own_o soul_n and_o be_v force_v at_o last_o to_o sing_v lachrymae_fw-la when_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o poor_a despise_a righteous_a stand_n in_o great_a boldness_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o you_o yourselves_o thrust_v out_o with_o a_o go_v you_o curse_v and_o then_o cry_v when_o it_o be_v too_o late_o we_o fool_v count_v their_o life_n madness_n and_o their_o end_n to_o have_v be_v without_o honour_n and_o now_o how_o be_v they_o number_v among_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o their_o lot_n be_v among_o the_o saint_n wisdom_n 5._o 1_o 4_o 5._o break_v no_o law_n nor_o covenant_n make_v with_o your_o people_n consider_v with_o what_o terrible_a solemnity_n god_n publish_v his_o law_n and_o covenant_n on_o mount_n sinai_n with_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n fire_n and_o tempest_n smoak_n and_o darkness_n with_o expectation_n of_o a_o exact_a performance_n of_o all_o his_o law_n and_o though_o in_o much_o mercy_n pity_n and_o compassion_n to_o we_o he_o have_v since_o remove_v the_o curse_n from_o it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o kill_a letter_n and_o ministry_n of_o death_n and_o have_v now_o publish_v it_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o mediator_n and_o consider_v withal_o that_o he_o have_v so_o great_a a_o detestation_n and_o hatred_n against_o sin_n that_o it_o amaze_v the_o very_a soul_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o make_v he_o who_o have_v more_o strength_n than_o all_o the_o angel_n in_o heaven_n to_o shrink_v and_o draw_v back_o and_o to_o pray_v with_o strong_a cry_n and_o bloody_a drop_n against_o the_o cup_n of_o his_o father_n wrath_n and_o against_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o mercy_n and_o to_o decline_v the_o business_n of_o his_o own_o come_n now_o or_o never_o be_v wise_a o_o you_o king_n and_o be_v instruct_v you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o consider_v that_o what_o i_o have_v write_v be_v for_o the_o true_a interest_n of_o your_o immortal_a soul_n and_o be_v of_o everlasting_a consequence_n and_o that_o within_o a_o few_o year_n you_o must_v bid_v a_o everlasting_a farewell_n to_o all_o your_o kingdom_n and_o glory_n that_o your_o winter-house_n and_o your_o summer-house_n that_o your_o house_n of_o ivory_n and_o your_o great_a house_n shall_v be_v smite_v and_o have_v a_o end_n and_o as_o you_o bring_v nothing_o with_o you_o into_o the_o world_n so_o shall_v you_o carry_v nothing_o out_o but_o your_o own_o conscience_n which_o will_v be_v as_o a_o thousand_o witness_n to_o testify_v against_o you_o and_o that_o heaven_n and_o hell_n will_v divide_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o when_o god_n make_v inquisition_n for_o blood_n he_o will_v remember_v the_o cry_n of_o the_o poor_a psal_n 9_o 12._o and_o revenge_v the_o persecution_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o saint_n shed_v either_o in_o war_n or_o peace_n think_v not_o more_o high_o of_o yourselves_o than_o you_o ought_v to_o think_v but_o think_v sober_o that_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o favour_n than_o the_o mean_a of_o your_o blackguard_n humi-repentis_a est_fw-la indolis_fw-la nunquam_fw-la insanire_fw-la sine_fw-la timida_fw-la apologia_fw-la and_o yet_o not_o quite_o mad_a most_o noble_a king_n prince_n and_o potentate_n for_o if_o you_o will_v serious_o and_o christianly_o consider_v your_o own_o most_o true_a and_o eternal_a interest_n and_o that_o unum_fw-la necessarium_fw-la which_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o great_a and_o deep_a concern_v of_o all_o prince_n as_o well_o as_o of_o all_o peasant_n you_o will_v find_v that_o i_o have_v write_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o soberness_n and_o be_o so_o far_o from_o do_v you_o wrong_v that_o it_o will_v lead_v you_o to_o the_o true_a way_n of_o happiness_n both_o here_o and_o hereafter_o and_o to_o give_v up_o our_o account_n with_o comfort_n at_o the_o great_a and_o dreadful_a day_n of_o account_n consider_v how_o mighty_a prevalent_a your_o example_n be_v to_o good_a or_o evil_n more_o than_o twenty_o thousand_o pulpit_n the_o sin_n of_o the_o vulgar_a hurt_n little_a by_o infection_n but_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o mighty_a be_v pestilential_a and_o poisonous_a i_o have_v do_v only_o beg_v your_o favour_n that_o what_o i_o have_v write_v i_o have_v write_v as_o advisoe_n and_o admonition_n not_o as_o imputation_n hear_v therefore_o o_o you_o king_n and_o understand_v learn_v you_o that_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o earth_n give_v ear_n you_o that_o rule_v the_o people_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o nation_n for_o power_n be_v give_v you_o of_o the_o lord_n and_o sovereignty_n from_o the_o high_a who_o shall_v try_v your_o work_n and_o search_v out_o your_o council_n because_o be_v minister_n of_o his_o kingdom_n you_o have_v not_o judge_v aright_o nor_o keep_v the_o law_n nor_o walk_v after_o the_o council_n of_o god._n horrible_o and_o speedy_o shall_v he_o come_v upon_o you_o for_o a_o sharp_a judgement_n shall_v be_v to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o high_a place_n for_o mercy_n will_v soon_o pardon_v the_o mean_a but_o mighty_a man_n shall_v be_v mighty_o torment_v for_o he_o which_o be_v lord_n over_o all_o shall_v fear_v no_o man_n person_n neither_o shall_v he_o stand_v in_o awe_n of_o any_o man_n greatness_n for_o he_o have_v make_v the_o small_a and_o great_a and_o care_v for_o all_o alike_o but_o a_o sore_a trial_n shall_v come_v upon_o the_o mighty_a unto_o you_o therefore_o o_o king_n do_v i_o speak_v that_o you_o
respect_v not_o to_o this_o life_n only_o but_o to_o that_o of_o a_o better_a even_o to_o eternity_n which_o no_o other_o lawgiver_n have_v therefore_o moses_n exhort_v the_o israelite_n that_o when_o they_o shall_v possess_v the_o land_n whether_o they_o be_v go_v that_o they_o shall_v keep_v and_o do_v the_o statute_n and_o judgement_n as_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v he_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v their_o wisdom_n and_o their_o understanding_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o nation_n which_o shall_v hear_v all_o those_o statute_n and_o say_v sure_o this_o great_a nation_n be_v a_o wise_a and_o understand_a people_n and_o what_o nation_n be_v there_o so_o great_a that_o have_v statute_n and_o judgement_n so_o righteous_a as_o all_o this_o law_n which_o i_o set_v before_o you_o this_o day_n deut._n 4._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o have_v declare_v the_o necessity_n usefulness_n and_o benefit_n of_o government_n and_o the_o final_a end_n thereof_o it_o be_v now_o requisite_a to_o show_v the_o true_a and_o efficient_a cause_n and_o right_n of_o government_n where_o and_o in_o who_o the_o just_a right_n of_o appoint_v governor_n and_o government_n be_v undoubted_o inherent_a and_o instate_a god_n beyond_o all_o contradiction_n reign_v by_o his_o own_o plenipotentiary_n power_n and_o do_v whatsoevor_n he_o please_v in_o heaven_n above_o and_o in_o earth_n beneath_o and_o in_o the_o water_n under_o the_o earth_n king_n and_o other_o governor_n only_a precariò_fw-la at_o the_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o other_o god_n by_o himself_o king_n by_o god_n and_o the_o govern_v god_n by_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n king_n by_o deligate_v authority_n from_o other_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o god_n be_v immense_a that_o of_o king_n limit_v so_o the_o power_n of_o god_n infinite_a that_o of_o king_n not_o so_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n endless_a boundless_a that_o of_o king_n limit_v to_o certain_a region_n and_o fade_v when_o god_n set_v king_n upon_o throne_n he_o set_v they_o there_o as_o his_o substitute_n to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o his_o people_n and_o to_o do_v judgement_n and_o justice_n 2_o chron._n 9_o 8._o and_o upon_o condition_n that_o the_o govern_v shall_v still_o be_v the_o lord_n people_n 2_o king._n 11._o 17._o 2_o chron._n 1._o 10._o so_o that_o god_n still_o remain_v lord_n and_o proprietor_n of_o the_o same_o people_n but_o set_v king_n and_o other_o magistrate_n over_o they_o to_o govern_v and_o feed_v they_o like_o good_a shepherd_n not_o to_o pill_v poll_n and_o flay_v they_o so_o all_o good_a king_n acknowledge_v as_o david_n solomon_n jehosaphat_n and_o other_o so_o nabuchadnezzar_n though_o a_o ethnic_a do_v acknowledge_v dan._n 2._o 47._o hence_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o king_n be_v set_v over_o a_o people_n to_o nourish_v and_o cherish_v they_o as_o god_n himself_o and_o not_o to_o wrong_v or_o oppress_v they_o so_o jehojada_n make_v a_o covenant_n between_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o king_n and_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o lord_n people_n and_o between_o the_o king_n also_o and_o the_o people_n 2_o king._n 11._o 17._o in_o the_o inauguration_n of_o joae_fw-la we_o read_v of_o a_o holy_a covenant_n between_o god_n and_o the_o king_n and_o the_o people_n as_o it_o be_v elsewhere_o express_v between_o jorada_n the_o chief_a priest_n and_o all_o the_o people_n and_o the_o king_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o people_n of_o god._n so_o josiah_n and_o all_o the_o people_n make_v covenant_n with_o god_n 2_o king._n 11._o 11._o 2_o chr._n 23._o 13_o 16._o 2_o king._n 23._o from_o which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n covenant_v between_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o king_n and_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o lord_n people_n and_o between_o the_o king_n also_o and_o the_o people_n that_o god_n shall_v be_v true_o and_o pure_o worship_v by_o both_o king_n and_o people_n of_o judah_n and_o be_v not_o the_o king_n so_o to_o reign_v that_o he_o shall_v suffer_v the_o people_n to_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o people_n so_o to_o obey_v the_o king_n that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n they_o be_v to_o obey_v god_n and_o both_o king_n and_o people_n swear_v by_o solemn_a sacrament_n in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o worship_n god_n and_o keep_v his_o law_n matter_n of_o fact_n do_v manifest_v it_o and_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n go_v into_o the_o house_n of_o baal_n and_o break_v it_o down_o his_o altar_n and_o his_o image_n break_v they_o in_o piece_n etc._n etc._n and_o restore_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v that_o all_o shall_v worship_v god_n and_o all_o shall_v take_v care_n that_o god_n be_v worship_v according_a to_o his_o own_o precept_n and_o prescript_n which_o if_o they_o do_v perform_v god_n will_v be_v with_o they_o and_o bless_v they_o if_o not_o than_o he_o will_v destroy_v they_o so_o moses_n before_o his_o death_n rehears●th_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o covenant_n make_v with_o their_o forefather_n and_o all_o the_o blessing_n and_o curse_n attend_v the_o breach_n or_o performance_n thereof_o deut._n 29._o 30_o 31._o command_v they_o to_o take_v the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o put_v it_o in_o the_o side_n of_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v there_o for_o a_o witness_n against_o thou_o etc._n etc._n deut._n 31._o 26_o 27_o 28._o after_o moses_n be_v dead_a god_n himself_o constitute_v joshua_n to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o his_o people_n on_o the_o same_o condition_n josh_n 1._o which_o if_o they_o transgress_v they_o shall_v be_v deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o canaanite_n one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a covenant_n which_o be_v make_v between_o god_n and_o the_o people_n under_o the_o judge_n be_v make_v under_o and_o with_o the_o king_n after_o saul_n be_v constitute_v king_n samuel_n say_v to_o the_o people_n fear_v the_o lord_n and_o serve_v he_o in_o truth_n with_o all_o your_o heart_n but_o if_o you_o shall_v still_o do_v wicked_o you_o shall_v be_v consume_v both_o you_o and_o your_o king_n josh_n 12._o 24_o 25._o thereby_o show_v that_o god_n expect_v as_o strict_a performance_n of_o his_o law_n from_o king_n as_o from_o the_o people_n saul_n be_v reject_v because_o he_o break_v covenant_n david_n be_v constitute_v king_n on_o the_o same_o condition_n and_o so_o solomon_n his_o son_n which_o covenant_n be_v that_o if_o they_o and_o their_o child_n keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o observe_v his_o statute_n they_o shall_v sit_v on_o the_o throne_n of_o israel_n for_o ever_o if_o otherwise_o they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v 1_o king_n ch_z 2._o ver_fw-la 12._o 2_o chron._n 6._o 16._o ch_n 7._o 17._o hence_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n find_v in_o the_o temple_n in_o the_o day_n of_o josiah_n be_v call_v the_o book_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o command_v his_o people_n to_o deliver_v to_o the_o king_n 2_o king._n 23._o 2._o deut._n 7._o 18._o which_o samuel_n do_v to_o saul_n 1_o sam._n 10._o 25._o and_o josiah_n according_o do_v covenant_n before_o the_o lord_n so_o the_o law_n which_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o ark_n be_v call_v the_o covenant_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n who_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o babylonish_n captivity_n renew_v their_o covenantwith_n god_n which_o they_o have_v violate_v 2_o chron._n 6._o 11._o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o king_n as_o vassal_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n solemn_o swear_v to_o be_v obedient_a thereunto_o we_o make_v a_o sure_a covenant_n and_o write_v it_o and_o our_o prince_n levite_n and_o priest_n seal_v unto_o it_o nehem._n 9_o 38._o the_o breach_n of_o which_o covenant_n be_v a_o like_a penal_a to_o king_n and_o people_n which_o be_v manifest_v in_o saul_n who_o for_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o for_o spare_v agag_n king_n of_o the_o amalekite_n be_v account_v a_o rebel_n and_o punish_v according_o 1_o sam._n 13._o 12_o 13._o and_o thereby_o teach_v that_o king_n if_o they_o break_v the_o law_n be_v as_o true_o rebel_n as_o subject_n and_o that_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n thou_o have_v reject_v the_o w●rd_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v reject_v thou_o from_o be_v king_n over_o israel_n 1_o sam._n 15._o 26_o 27._o which_o crime_n do_v not_o terminate_v only_o in_o the_o person_n of_o king_n so_o rebel_a but_o be_v extensive_a also_o to_o their_o child_n so_o god_n do_v rend_v the_o kingdom_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o solomon_n and_o give_v ten_o tribe_n to_o his_o servant_n jeroboam_n because_o he_o forsake_v god_n and_o worship_v 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n 1_o king._n 11._o 32_o 33._o
set_v a_o stranger_n over_o thou_o which_o be_v not_o thy_o brother_n 2._o by_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o prophet_n and_o since_o and_o not_o without_o this_o moral_a reason_n that_o one_o from_o among_o themselves_o be_v by_o their_o consent_n and_o suffrage_n set_v king_n over_o they_o that_o what_o authority_n soever_o they_o grant_v unto_o king_n they_o may_v acknowledge_v to_o have_v have_v it_o from_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o oblige_v more_o ready_o to_o employ_v all_o their_o time_n study_n strength_n and_o endeavour_n for_o the_o good_a of_o they_o who_o set_v they_o over_o themselves_o to_o take_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o government_n upon_o their_o shoulder_n and_o therefore_o they_o consent_v to_o pay_v they_o all_o honour_n allow_v they_o great_a privilege_n and_o prerogative_n and_o give_v they_o munificent_a tribute_n and_o maintenance_n for_o the_o support_n of_o they_o and_o the_o governm_n nt_v and_o swear_v allegiance_n unto_o their_o king_n and_o the_o king_n swear_v unto_o the_o people_n to_o keep_v faith_n with_o they_o in_o the_o due_a performance_n and_o execution_n of_o the_o law_n already_o make_v and_o to_o be_v make_v the_o reason_n former_o set_v down_o do_v warrant_v this_o viz._n no_o man_n have_v or_o can_v have_v any_o lawful_a power_n to_o govern_v kingdom_n and_o state_n but_o he_o must_v have_v it_o either_o immediate_o from_o god_n himself_o which_o no_o man_n now_o can_v possible_o pretend_v unto_o or_o by_o consent_n of_o the_o pa●t●●s_n the_o elder_n of_o israel_n be_v the_o representative_a 1_o sam._n 10._o 19_o of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n for_o by_o that_o name_n be_v general_o mean_v centurion_n captain_n judges_z prince_n of_o all_o the_o tribe_n ●f_n israel_n etc._n etc._n come_v to_o samuel_n in_o ramah_n desire_v a_o king_n to_o 〈◊〉_d in_o and_o out_o before_o 〈◊〉_d like_o the_o nation_n at_o who_o instance_n samuel_n do_v anoint_v saul_n to_o be_v their_o king_n neverless_o samuel_n that_o saul_n may_v know_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v by_o the_o people_n call_v all_o the_o pe●●●_n together_o in_o mizpeh_n by_o their_o tribe_n and_o by_o their_o thousand_o where_o as_o if_o the_o farmer_n election_n and_o anoint_v have_v be_v insignificant_a they_o cast_v lot_n which_o ●ell_o upon_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n and_o saul_n the_o son_n of_o kish_n be_v take_v and_o all_o the_o people_n shout_v and_o say_v god_n save_o the_o king_n 1_o sam._n 10._o 17_o etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v do_v at_o the_o people_n instanced_a and_o lest_o the_o election_n of_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v attribute_v whole_o to_o the_o chance_n of_o lot_n all_o the_o people_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o samuel_n some_o few_o grumble_a dissenter_n except_v have_v say_v shall_v saul_n reign_v over_o we_o 1_o sam._n 11._o 13._o go_v to_o gilgal_n and_o renew_v the_o kingdom_n there_o and_o make_v saul_n king_n before_o the_o lord_n in_o gilgal_n ver_fw-la 14._o 15._o which_o manifest_v that_o though_o saul_n be_v choose_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o also_o by_o lot_n yet_o be_v constitute_v confirm_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n god_n indeed_o before_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o king_n in_o israel_n know_v that_o they_o will_v reject_v he_o and_o foolish_o desire_v a_o king_n like_o all_o the_o nation_n round_o about_o they_o prescribe_a rule_n and_o law_n whereby_o they_o ought_v to_o govern_v deut._n 17._o so_o david_n samuel_n saul_n be_v reject_v by_o god_n from_o reign_v over_o israel_n by_o god_n command_n anoint_v david_n at_o methlem_n who_o god_n have_v choose_v king_n over_o israel_n do_v david_n therefore_o reign_v though_o so_o choose_v by_o god_n himself_o and_o anoint_v by_o his_o own_o command_n no_o sure_a he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o it_o that_o he_o avoid_v the_o presence_n of_o saul_n hide_v himself_o from_o he_o and_o arm_v himself_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o goliath_n and_o arm_a man_n against_o the_o evil_a design_n which_o saul_n have_v against_o he_o and_o flee_v from_o he_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o and_o become_v as_o it_o be_v a_o exile_a and_o out_o lawed_a person_n and_o be_v not_o king_n till_o saul_n be_v dead_a nor_o then_o neither_o until_o all_o the_o people_n of_o judah_n first_o choose_v he_o king_n of_o judah_n by_o their_o suffrage_n and_o seven_o year_n after_o all_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o all_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n come_v ●o_o hebron_n and_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o he_o before_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o they_o anoint_v david_n king_n over_o israel_n 1_o sam._n 16._o 13._o 1_o chron._n 11._o 3._o 2_o sam._n 5._o 3._o beside_o if_o samuel_n first_o anoint_v of_o david_n king_n have_v former_o make_v he_o king_n then_o either_o saul_n be_v thereby_o depose_v or_o else_o there_o be_v two_o king_n of_o israel_n at_o one_o time_n which_o be_v montuous_a to_o conceive_v for_o according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n king_n have_v no_o royal_a power_n from_o the_o people_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a david_n be_v not_o king_n for_o that_o after_o his_o be_v so_o anoint_v he_o o●ten_v call_v saul_n the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v and_o that_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n spirit_n moreover_o he_o neither_o challenge_v nor_o execute_v any_o royal_a authority_n till_o he_o be_v crown_v king_n by_o all_o israel_n at_o hebron_n but_o be_v persecute_v and_o hunt_v as_o a_o partridge_n on_o the_o mountain_n and_o that_o as_o a_o rebel_n to_o saul_n of_o which_o he_o acquit_v himself_o when_o he_o have_v the_o life_n of_o saul_n in_o his_o power_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o take_v it_o which_o he_o just_o may_v have_v do_v have_v he_o be_v real_o king_n and_o it_o have_v be_v a_o crime_n in_o he_o be_v king_n not_o to_o have_v execute_v his_o royal_a authority_n in_o do_v justice_n and_o judgement_n by_o cut_v off_o saul_n a_o murderer_n who_o kill_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n especial_o see_v saul_n according_a to_o such_o doctrine_n must_v be_v but_o a_o private_a murderer_n and_o david_n the_o only_a lawful_a king._n whereby_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o not_o samu●●_n s_o oil_n but_o the_o consent_n and_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n that_o make_v both_o saul_n and_o david_n king_n whereby_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o though_o god_n appoint_v david_n to_o be_v their_o king_n yet_o not_o so_o absolute_a but_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v under_o and_o subject_n to_o agreement_n with_o his_o people_n and_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o they_o on_o term_n to_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o perform_v with_o they_o as_o they_o with_o he_o and_o this_o before_o the_o lord_n by_o which_o covenant_n he_o be_v oblige_v to_o keep_v within_o the_o boundary_n which_o god_n and_o the_o people_n have_v set_v so_o david_n be_v twice_o anoint_v 1._o by_o the_o prophet_n by_o god_n command_n in_o token_n of_o his_o election_n 2._o by_o the_o instance_n and_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n in_o confirmation_n of_o his_o be_v constitute_v king_n by_o they_o 2_o sam._n 4._o 11._o &_o 5._o 13._o so_o it_o be_v true_a that_o by_o god_n king_n reign_v yet_o so_o as_o not_o without_o the_o people_n consent_n approbation_n and_o covenant_n first_o have_v that_o he_o may_v reign_v over_o they_o for_o their_o good_a beside_o king_n receive_v not_o their_o kingship_n immediate_o from_o god_n nor_o the_o sword_n because_o the_o people_n be_v first_o gird_v with_o the_o sword._n moreover_o will_v any_o christian_a say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o nation_n who_o live_v without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n do_v rule_n and_o reign_v by_o god_n immediate_a appointment_n i_o trow_v not_o the_o like_a be_v observable_a in_o constitute_v solomon_n king_n who_o though_o david_n be_v son_n and_o god_n choose_v he_o to_o sit_v upon_o his_o father_n throne_n and_o to_o be_v a_o father_n unto_o he_o as_o he_o have_v promise_v david_n 2._o sam._n 7._o 13_o 14_o 15._o and_o though_o david_n have_v promise_v his_o people_n that_o solomon_n shall_v succeed_v he_o and_o sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a and_o therefore_o david_n assemble_v all_o the_o prince_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o tribe_n and_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o company_n and_o captain_n over_o the_o thousand_o and_o the_o steward_n over_o all_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o his_o son_n with_o the_o officer_n and_o with_o the_o mighty_a man_n and_o with_o all_o the_o valiant_a man_n which_o bear_v any_o public_a office_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o representative_a of_o all_o israel_n and_o consequent_o have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o government_n and_o in_o the_o election_n unto_o jerusalem_n this_o great_a congregation_n make_v solomon_n the_o son_n of_o david_n king_n
of_o germany_n confirm_v in_o the_o regency_n by_o the_o state_n follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o bastard_n be_v crown_v king_n and_o afterward_o be_v degrade_v from_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o crown_n charles_n the_o simple_n after_o twenty_o two_o year_n be_v force_v to_o renounce_v his_o crown_n though_o a_o lawful_a king._n lewis_n the_o four_o his_o son_n carry_v into_o england_n by_o his_o mother_n etc._n etc._n and_o ralf_n or_o raoul_n duke_n of_o burgundy_n call_v to_o the_o crown_n though_o a_o usurper_n after_o who_o death_n the_o say_a lewis_n the_o four_o call_v doutreme_a be_v restore_v to_o the_o crown_n lewis_n the_o pious_a though_o the_o son_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a yet_o be_v elect_v anno_fw-la 812._o in_o who_o will_n extant_a in_o naucler_n charles_n the_o great_a beseech_v the_o people_n that_o they_o will_v choose_v one_o of_o his_o nephew_n which_o they_o please_v by_o the_o public_a council_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o command_v his_o uncle_n by_o the_o public_a decree_n of_o his_o people_n to_o acquiesce_v hence_o carolus_n calvus_n charles_n the_o bald_a a_o nephew_n by_o lodovicus_n pius_n and_o juditha_n confess_v himself_o choose_v king._n aymoinus_fw-la historiogr_n 85._o from_o the_o merovingiens_fw-la be_v twenty_o two_o king_n of_o the_o merovees_n to_o the_o garlovingiens_fw-la by_o charles_n martel_n major_a of_o the_o palace_n in_o name_n but_o king_n in_o effect_n of_o which_o race_n there_o have_v be_v thirteen_o king_n than_o the_o crown_n come_v to_o the_o capet_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o pharamont_n first_o king_n of_o france_n after_o many_o harangues_fw-fr pro_fw-la and_o con_v about_o all_o kind_n of_o government_n at_o last_o they_o resolve_v on_o kingly_a government_n as_o the_o best_a sort_n of_o government_n than_o the_o lord_n peer_n magistrate_n and_o chief_a captain_n as_o representative_n of_o all_o the_o people_n choose_v he_o king_n and_o be_v inaugurate_v or_o crown_v by_o set_v he_o on_o a_o great_a shield_n or_o target_n and_o carry_v he_o into_o the_o field_n where_o also_o both_o the_o common_a soldier_n in_o arm_n and_o the_o people_n be_v assemble_v who_o confirm_v and_o approve_v the_o choice_n by_o their_o acclamation_n about_o the_o year_n 419_o or_o 420._o and_o then_o they_o do_v swear_v to_o the_o king_n to_o keep_v faith_n and_o allegiance_n to_o honour_n serve_v maintain_v and_o defend_v he_o against_o his_o enemy_n but_o on_o condition_n that_o he_o be_v religious_a valiant_a just_a merciful_a impartial_a diligent_a understand_v in_o management_n of_o affair_n skilful_a to_o resist_v their_o enemy_n to_o punish_v evil_a doer_n and_o to_o preserve_v the_o good_a and_o to_o defend_v the_o christian_a faith_n likewise_o this_o mutual_a and_o reciprocal_a swear_v and_o covenant_v equal_o obligatory_a on_o both_o side_n be_v the_o custom_n from_o pharamont_n to_o pepin_n and_o afterward_o in_o the_o race_n of_o the_o carliens_n descend_v of_o pepin_n the_o french_a of_o their_o own_o free_a will_n choose_v their_o king_n the_o crown_n in_o those_o day_n not_o descend_v hereditary_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o crown_n come_v to_o the_o son_n or_o brother_n do_v succeed_v the_o father_n or_o brother_n it_o be_v not_o by_o any_o right_n of_o inheritance_n or_o succession_n to_o which_o they_o can_v not_o possible_o have_v any_o right_a or_o pretence_n by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n that_o whole_o depend_v on_o consent_n of_o party_n to_o be_v govern_v but_o only_o through_o the_o affection_n which_o the_o french_a do_v bear_v to_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o good_a king_n decease_v after_o pharamont_n they_o choose_v one_o daniel_n a_o monk_n who_o they_o surname_v chilperick_n who_o for_o his_o debauchery_n they_o banish_v and_o choose_v one_o gillon_n or_o gilles_n a_o roman_a senator_n or_o master_n of_o the_o roman_a militia_n for_o their_o king_n who_o govern_v as_o ill_o as_o chilperick_n they_o send_v and_o entreat_v sigibert_n king_n of_o metz_n to_o take_v the_o crown_n of_o france_n and_o crown_v he_o les_fw-fr burguignons_n and_o les_fw-fr austrasiens_n have_v make_v peace_n with_o the_o other_o french_a choose_v clotaire_n for_o their_o king_n in_o all_o the_o three_o kingdom_n and_o afterward_o choose_v childerick_n king_n of_o austrasie_n who_o delay_v to_o come_v they_o choose_v one_o odon_n after_o the_o decease_n of_o dagobert_n his_o son_n clovis_n be_v young_a they_o choose_v he_o after_o his_o decease_n they_o choose_v his_o son_n clotaire_n king_n who_o die_v four_o year_n after_o they_o choose_v thyerre_n his_o brother_n who_o they_o afterward_o depose_v and_o choose_v childerick_n in_o his_o room_n history_n be_v full_a of_o the_o like_a example_n in_o other_o kingdom_n afterward_o in_o the_o posterity_n of_o pepin_n who_o have_v be_v ten_o year_n master_n of_o the_o palace_n to_o childerick_n a_o weak_a prince_n set_v up_o for_o himself_o and_o by_o his_o power_n and_o artifices_fw-la by_o the_o help_n of_o pope_n zachary_n his_o ghostly_a father_n dispense_n with_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o the_o people_n have_v swear_v to_o childerick_n the_o last_o king_n of_o the_o race_n of_o clovis_n who_o the_o people_n cause_v to_o be_v put_v into_o a_o monastery_n and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o pepin_n the_o french_a by_o common_a consent_n choose_v charles_n and_o carloman_n his_o son_n for_o their_o king_n with_o a_o charge_n that_o they_o do_v equal_o part_v and_o share_v the_o kingdom_n between_o they_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o race_n of_o pepin_n lewis_n king_n of_o the_o franc_n be_v dead_a they_o be_v willing_a to_o transfer_v the_o kingdom_n to_o charles_n king_n of_o austrasie_n or_o according_a to_o other_o duke_z of_o lorraine_n but_o whilst_o he_o defer_v his_o come_n hugh_z capit_fw-la take_v possession_n of_o the_o crown_n it_o be_v also_o evident_a in_o story_n that_o one_o king_n son_n have_v be_v reject_v and_o another_o enthrone_v for_o the_o french_a not_o be_v please_v with_o the_o infancy_n and_o weakness_n of_o charles_n son_n of_o joy_n de_fw-mi begue_n about_o nine_o or_o ten_o year_n old_a choose_v for_o their_o king_n odon_n son_n of_o robert_n saxon_n which_o be_v kill_v by_o the_o norman_n in_o battle_n and_o that_o two_o year_n after_o they_o be_v displease_v with_o the_o government_n of_o odon_n they_o discharge_v he_o of_o the_o government_n and_o set_v up_o charles_n again_o who_o misbehave_v himself_o be_v imprison_v and_o they_o put_v in_o his_o place_n raoul_n king_n of_o bourgongue_n by_o which_o example_n it_o be_v apparent_a the_o king_n of_o france_n be_v elective_a not_o hereditary_a but_o after_o they_o obtain_v hereditary_a possession_n of_o the_o crown_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o election_n by_o the_o people_n which_o have_v last_v long_o be_v lay_v aside_o the_o king_n be_v crown_v and_o choose_v at_o rheims_n by_o the_o peer_n of_o france_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o noble_n and_o of_o the_o people_n bernard_n de_fw-fr gerard._n sieur_n mezeray_fw-fr jean_n de_fw-fr serres_n in_o sum_n all_o king_n be_v at_o first_o elect_v and_o choose_v by_o the_o people_n and_o though_o now_o many_o succeed_v by_o inheritance_n as_o by_o much_o the_o better_a way_n yet_o that_o way_n also_o be_v constitute_v approve_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o people_n or_o their_o representative_n no_o king_n drop_v out_o of_o the_o cloud_n neither_o do_v they_o start_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n though_o the_o people_n choose_v the_o root_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o so_o absolute_o choose_v the_o stem_n or_o branch_n but_o if_o they_o do_v degenerate_a they_o in_o prudence_n and_o justice_n may_v make_v a_o better_a choice_n the_o heir_n of_o such_o root_n be_v not_o so_o much_o bear_v king_n as_o adopt_v so_o not_o so_o much_o king_n as_o fair_a candidate_n for_o crown_n presumptive_a king_n only_o where_o succession_n be_v not_o settle_v by_o law_n make_v by_o public_a consent_n chap._n v._n some_o opinion_n of_o hobs_n machiavil_n pulpit_n and_o other_o examine_v the_o people_n power_n assert_v in_o choose_v refuse_v and_o reject_v king_n according_a as_o they_o do_v or_o do_v not_o observe_v law_n and_o covenant_n covenant_n equal_o oblige_v if_o break_v by_o one_o the_o other_o be_v thereby_o set_v free_a usage_n and_o custom_n of_o other_o nation_n sad_n example_n of_o perjury_n it_o be_v true_a that_o machiavil_n hobbs_n the_o pulpit_n and_o other_o do_v inculcate_v that_o kingly_a power_n be_v so_o found_v by_o god_n immediate_o that_o there_o remain_v nothing_o human_a in_o it_o and_o that_o public_a consent_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o requisite_a and_o that_o king_n be_v responsible_a to_o god_n only_o which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o tyrannical_a arbitrary_a and_o unbounden_a sway._n for_o if_o kingdom_n by_o common_a consent_n can_v neither_o set_v bound_n nor_o condition_n nor_o judge_v of_o
they_o when_o limit_v to_o king_n but_o must_v consider_v they_o as_o thing_n mere_o divine_a the_o great_a tie_n in_o the_o world_n above_o all_o human_a law_n consent_n and_o comprehension_n than_o all_o nation_n be_v equal_o slave_n and_o bear_v to_o no_o more_o liberty_n than_o the_o subject_n of_o rex_fw-la asinerum_fw-la who_o wooden_a shoe_n and_o canvas_n breeches_n proclaim_v what_o a_o blessedness_n it_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v under_o a_o mere_a divine_a prerogative_n but_o the_o sure_a basis_n of_o all_o right_a government_n be_v common_a consent_n and_o the_o most_o just_a and_o honourable_a end_n be_v common_a good_a and_o not_o such_o a_o divine_a prerogative_n as_o none_o can_v understand_v nor_o possible_a for_o any_o mortal_a to_o prove_v god_n be_v not_o more_o the_o author_n of_o regal_a then_o of_o democratical_a aristocratical_a or_o any_o other_o form_n of_o government_n or_o power_n nor_o more_o the_o author_n of_o supreme_a than_o of_o subordinate_a power_n subordinate_a magistrate_n have_v their_o power_n as_o much_o from_o god_n as_o king_n have_v and_o as_o responsible_a to_o god_n only_o as_o they_o and_o yet_o their_o power_n be_v not_o beyond_o human_a reprimand_n and_o determination_n law_n be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v any_o special_a ordinance_n immediate_o send_v from_o heaven_n as_o of_o old_a by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n or_o prophet_n they_o now_o can_v be_v nothing_o else_o among_o christian_n but_o the_o paction_n and_o agreement_n of_o such_o and_o such_o politic_a society_n and_o power_n nay_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o power_n be_v so_o original_o inherent_a in_o the_o people_n that_o they_o can_v just_o without_o injury_n to_o god_n and_o nature_n law_n divest_v themselves_o whole_o of_o it_o and_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o may_v and_o virtue_n which_o such_o or_o such_o a_o society_n of_o man_n contain_v in_o itself_o and_o when_o by_o such_o and_o such_o law_n of_o common_a consent_n and_o agreement_n it_o be_v derive_v and_o deligate_v into_o such_o and_o such_o hand_n god_n confirm_v that_o law_n and_o so_o man_n be_v the_o free_a natural_a and_o voluntary_a author_n the_o law_n be_v the_o instrument_n and_o god_n be_v the_o establisher_n of_o both_o all_o other_o power_n not_o derive_v from_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v but_o sophisticate_a and_o adulterate_a in_o all_o prince_n and_o they_o that_o embrace_v such_o power_n embrace_v a_o cloud_n instead_o of_o a_o juno_n the_o fountain_n or_o efficient_a cause_n of_o power_n be_v most_o certain_o in_o the_o govern_v and_o from_o hence_o the_o inferrence_n be_v just_a that_o king_n though_o singulis_fw-la majores_fw-la yet_o be_v universis_fw-la minores_fw-la for_o if_o the_o people_n be_v the_o true_a efficient_a cause_n of_o power_n as_o undeniable_o they_o be_v its_o a_o rule_n both_o in_o nature_n and_o politic_n quicquid_fw-la efficit_fw-la tale_n est_fw-la magis_fw-la tale_n hence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o as_o the_o govern_v be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n so_o they_o and_o their_o happy_a estate_n and_o condition_n be_v the_o final_a end_n of_o all_o government_n and_o it_o be_v strange_a nay_o monstrous_a that_o in_o confer_v and_o deligate_a their_o own_o power_n and_o virtue_n to_o this_o or_o that_o man_n or_o to_o these_o or_o those_o person_n to_o command_v in_o chief_a for_o order_n and_o regulation_n sake_n only_o shall_v aim_v at_o any_o thing_n but_o at_o their_o own_o good_a and_o happiness_n both_o in_o the_o first_o and_o last_o place_n or_o to_o express_v it_o in_o another_o dialect_n the_o public_a power_n and_o authority_n of_o all_o society_n be_v above_o every_o individual_a contain_v in_o the_o same_o society_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o king_n or_o not_o king_n all_o imperial_a and_o royal_a dignity_n be_v institute_v by_o the_o commonwealth_n to_o preserve_v itself_o and_o not_o erect_v to_o preserve_v royal_a dignity_n otherwise_o or_o far_o than_o it_o conduce_v to_o the_o honour_n safety_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o that_o which_o be_v the_o end_n be_v far_o more_o honourable_a and_o valuable_a both_o in_o nature_n and_o polity_n than_o that_o which_o be_v the_o mean_n which_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o transcendent_a law_n of_o salus_n populi_n to_o which_o all_o imperial_a and_o prerogative_n law_n be_v just_o subservient_fw-fr and_o be_v they_o not_o conduce_v to_o those_o end_n they_o be_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o yet_o expedient_a plea_n of_o force_n or_o conquest_n can_v acquit_v prince_n of_o that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o people_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o end_n of_o all_o just_a power_n for_o mere_a force_n ought_v not_o to_o alter_v law_n of_o nature_n or_o frustrate_v the_o tenor_n of_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n and_o if_o it_o can_v yet_o there_o be_v more_o reason_n why_o the_o people_n may_v justify_v force_n to_o regain_a their_o undeniable_a right_n and_o franchise_n than_o the_o imperialist_n may_v to_o subvert_v the_o same_o it_o be_v unnatural_a that_o any_o nation_n by_o its_o own_o inherent_a and_o natural_a virtue_n and_o prowess_n shall_v mere_o establish_v tyranny_n and_o countenance_n slavery_n and_o to_o make_v that_o which_o be_v most_o excellent_a subservient_fw-fr to_o that_o which_o be_v most_o vile_a or_o to_o advance_v one_o from_o among_o themselves_o to_o the_o throne_n that_o they_o themselves_o may_v be_v bring_v under_o axe_n and_o harrow_n even_o heathen_a prince_n that_o have_v be_v absolute_a have_v acknowledge_v themselves_o subject_a and_o servant_n to_o the_o public_a and_o bear_v for_o that_o service_n as_o be_v well_o satisfy_v populi_n rem_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la svam_fw-la no_o captain-general_n have_v such_o unlimited_a and_o uncircumscribed_a power_n but_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v turn_v his_o cannon_n upon_o his_o soldier_n they_o be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la absolve_v of_o all_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o bind_v by_o a_o high_a duty_n both_o to_o god_n and_o nature_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o by_o resistance_n and_o defence_n such_o tacit_a and_o implicit_a trust_n and_o reservation_n be_v in_o all_o public_a government_n though_o of_o the_o most_o absolute_a nature_n and_o there_o must_v be_v these_o necessary_a condition_n viz._n that_o the_o govern_v be_v safe_a free_a and_o happy_a there_o be_v in_o all_o law_n a_o literal_a and_o a_o equitable_a sense_n no_o government_n do_v ever_o give_v power_n to_o their_o king_n for_o their_o woe_n but_o for_o their_o happiness_n if_o by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n king_n mis-improve_a their_o power_n against_o the_o equity_n thereof_o than_o they_o give_v liberty_n to_o the_o command_v to_o refuse_v obedience_n to_o the_o letter_n for_o the_o law_n take_v abstract_n from_o its_o original_a reason_n end_v and_o equity_n become_v a_o shadow_n without_o a_o substance_n a_o body_n without_o a_o soul_n which_o distinction_n if_o not_o allow_v the_o very_a end_n of_o all_o law_n which_o be_v to_o minister_v impartial_a justice_n indifferent_o to_o every_o man_n and_o to_o give_v bound_n and_o limit_n to_o the_o exorbitant_a will_n of_o prince_n and_o governor_n will_v be_v disappoint_v salus_n populi_n be_v the_o suprema_fw-la lex_fw-la execution_n of_o law_n according_a to_o their_o equity_n and_o reason_n be_v the_o spirit_n that_o give_v life_n to_o authority_n the_o letter_n kill_v equity_n be_v so_o natural_o imply_v in_o all_o law_n that_o be_v not_o mere_o imperial_a from_o the_o analogy_n that_o all_o body_n politic_a hold_n with_o the_o natural_a whence_o all_o government_n and_o governor_n borrow_v a_o proportionable_a respect_n except_o we_o deem_v obedience_n bind_v man_n to_o cut_v their_o own_o throat_n or_o their_o neighbour_n for_o kingdom_n must_v not_o be_v without_o mean_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o which_o always_o be_v entrust_v in_o some_o certain_a hand_n with_o a_o power_n to_o provide_v in_o a_o orderly_a way_n for_o the_o good_a and_o safety_n of_o the_o whole_a all_o the_o privilege_n prerogative_n and_o authority_n confer_v on_o king_n by_o any_o people_n be_v but_o as_o so_o many_o trust_n repose_v in_o they_o to_o improve_v for_o the_o good_a and_o glory_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n and_o not_o to_o abuse_v or_o use_v at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n what_o ever_o the_o exegency_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v if_o that_o be_v so_o all_o our_o law_n will_v signify_v little_a and_o therefore_o if_o king_n govern_v not_o according_a to_o equity_n and_o the_o trust_n repose_v in_o they_o that_o nation_n or_o its_o representative_n may_v demand_v a_o account_n and_o redress_v for_o kingdom_n by_o no_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n be_v to_o be_v leave_v without_o a_o power_n and_o mean_n to_o preserve_v themselves_o the_o charter_n of_o nature_n entitle_v all_o subject_n of_o all_o country_n to_o safety_n and_o freedom_n by_o its_o supreme_a law._n if_o
you_o be_v moderate_a and_o mild_a towards_o your_o subject_n and_o that_o you_o govern_v they_o with_o justice_n and_o piety_n and_o that_o none_o of_o you_o in_o your_o own_o person_n give_v judgement_n on_o any_o captive_a or_o guilty_a person_n but_o that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o judge_n appoint_v thereunto_o use_v both_o severity_n and_o indulgence_n with_o great_a wisdom_n and_o moderation_n that_o whilst_o a_o pious_a temper_n be_v use_v by_o we_o all_o the_o king_n may_v rejoice_v in_o his_o people_n and_o the_o people_n in_o their_o king_n and_o god_n both_o in_o king_n and_o people_n and_o concern_v our_o future_a king_n we_o pronounce_v this_o sentence_n that_o if_o any_o of_o they_o contrary_a to_o the_o reverence_n of_o our_o law_n by_o regal_a haughtiness_n and_o proud_a domination_n shall_v treat_v we_o tyrannical_o anathema_n sit_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v from_o christ_n and_o be_v separate_a from_o god_n for_o that_o he_o presume_v to_o bring_v the_o kingdom_n into_o trouble_n and_o distress_n de_fw-fr smithilane_n vero_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o for_o king_n smithilane_n who_o be_v guilty_a and_o sensible_a of_o his_o own_o heinous_a enormity_n and_o wickedness_n deprive_v himself_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o lay_v down_o his_o royal_a ensign_n and_o we_o decree_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o nation_n that_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o wife_n nor_o his_o child_n for_o his_o tyrannical_a government_n shall_v never_o be_v join_v to_o our_o society_n neither_o will_v we_o at_o any_o time_n promote_v they_o to_o honour_n or_o dignity_n this_o be_v a_o singular_a and_o excellent_a example_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v a_o another_o decree_n of_o the_o six_o synod_n toledo_n cap._n 3._o in_o which_o after_o the_o statute_n of_o banish_v the_o jew_n it_o be_v say_v that_o in_o vain_a they_o do_v ordain_v good_a law_n except_o they_o do_v also_o provide_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v keep_v therefore_o afterward_o if_o the_o king_n have_v the_o reins_o of_o government_n do_v violate_v the_o observation_n of_o his_o faith_n promise_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o make_v fuel_n of_o eternal_a fire_n and_o whoever_o else_o priest_n or_o christian_n shall_v comply_v with_o he_o in_o so_o do_v by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a what_o power_n the_o state_n of_o that_o kingdom_n have_v over_o their_o king_n if_o they_o violate_v their_o oath_n when_o by_o the_o feudary_n right_o which_o comprehend_v the_o kingdom_n a_o vassal_n or_o slave_n owe_v no_o service_n to_o his_o master_n if_o excommunicate_v but_o be_v free_a from_o his_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n lib._n 2._o feud_n do_fw-mi 28._o 28._o 1._o v._n de_fw-la jure_fw-la magstr_n p._n 67_o 68_o 69._o take_v here_o also_o the_o ancient_a form_n whereby_o the_o kingdom_n of_o arragon_n do_v oblige_v their_o king_n not_o only_o at_o his_o inauguration_n but_o iterate_v it_o also_o in_o their_o triennial_n convention_n in_o which_o the_o king_n be_v present_a that_o he_o may_v receive_v his_o power_n from_o they_o and_o they_o they_o from_o he_o where_o after_o many_o ceremony_n perform_v and_o pass_v between_o that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o justice_n of_o arragon_n which_o represent_v the_o person_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n and_o to_o which_o the_o king_n by_o oath_n be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v and_o the_o king_n himself_o either_o to_o be_v create_v or_o already_o create_v formula_fw-la qua_fw-la hispaniarum_fw-la reges_fw-la inaugurantur_fw-la nos_fw-la qui_fw-la volemos_fw-la tanto_fw-la comme_fw-fr vos_fw-fr y_fw-fr podemos_fw-la mass_fw-es que_fw-fr vos_fw-fr elegimos_fw-la rey_n con_fw-mi est_fw-la as_o y_fw-fr est_fw-fr as_o conditione_n intra_fw-la vos_fw-fr y_fw-fr nos_fw-la un_fw-fr que_fw-fr manda_fw-la mass_fw-la que_fw-la vos_fw-la i._n e._n we_o that_o be_v as_o great_a as_o you_o and_o can_v do_v more_o than_o you_o choose_v you_o king_n on_o these_o and_o these_o condition_n between_o you_o and_o we_o and_o one_o can_v command_v more_o than_o you_o by_o which_o you_o may_v see_v that_o that_o wise_a and_o prudent_a people_n do_v honour_n their_o king_n as_o they_o ought_v ibid_fw-la 71_o 72._o if_o we_o consult_v the_o empire_n of_o germany_n what_o power_n the_o prince_n elector_n have_v there_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o the_o world_n both_o in_o choose_v the_o emperor_n and_o depose_n of_o he_o as_o it_o happen_v to_o adolphus_n anno_fw-la 1296._o and_o to_o wencesla●s_fw-la anno_fw-la 1400._o emperor_n for_o there_o be_v such_o a_o oath_n whereby_o their_o caesar_n be_v bind_v and_o oblige_v as_o be_v describe_v in_o a_o treatise_n entitle_v speculum_fw-la saxonicum_fw-la lib._n 3._o 3._o 54._o for_o when_o the_o king_n be_v choose_v he_o be_v oblige_v by_o oath_n to_o perform_v faith_n and_o homage_n to_o the_o empire_n and_o promise_v that_o with_o all_o his_o might_n he_o will_v promote_v the_o administration_n of_o justice_n and_o punish_v all_o injury_n and_o by_o all_o endeavour_n maintain_v the_o right_n of_o the_o empire_n now_o that_o they_o that_o have_v power_n to_o choose_v they_o king_n have_v power_n also_o to_o curb_v and_o punish_v they_o be_v manifest_a by_o undisputable_a reason_n and_o matter_n of_o fact._n ejus_fw-la est_fw-la tollere_fw-la cujus_fw-la est_fw-la ponere_fw-la childerick_n be_v expulse_v anno_fw-la 361._o and_o gilo_n substitute_v who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o family_n of_o the_o merove_n and_o chilperick_n anno_fw-la 578._o and_o theodorick_n anno_fw-la 667._o moreover_o anno_fw-la 890._o the_o state_n neglect_v charles_n the_o son_n of_o lewis_n balbus_n choose_v euden_n alias_o oden_n to_o be_v king._n we_o read_v also_o that_o hugh_n capet_n cheat_v charles_n the_o brother_n of_o l●thari●s_n whilst_o he_o neglect_v the_o government_n in_o short_a if_o the_o kingdom_n of_o fra●cegalli_n have_v no_o power_n to_o choose_v than_o neither_o pepin_n nor_o capet_n have_v any_o right_n to_o the_o crown_n there_o be_v no_o want_n of_o heir_n males_n of_o merovey_n when_o pepin_n usurp_v the_o crown_n nor_o be_v want_v son_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a when_o capet_n challenge_v the_o crown_n how_o great_a the_o power_n of_o the_o state_n ordines_fw-la regni_fw-la of_o that_o kingdom_n in_o the_o first_o constitution_n thereof_o be_v and_o how_o long_o it_o continue_v so_o and_o how_o the_o face_n of_o that_o government_n be_v now_o alter_v and_o degenerate_v into_o tyranny_n history_n be_v full_a which_o no_o prescription_n of_o what_o date_n soever_o by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n man_n nature_n or_o reason_n can_v justify_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o solemn_a oath_n they_o take_v at_o their_o inauguration_n which_o justify_v all_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v but_o about_o anno_fw-la 1380._o that_o the_o state_n of_o that_o kingdom_n cancel_v and_o make_v void_a the_o will_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o surname_v the_o wise_a and_o but_o anno_fw-la 1467._o when_o lewis_n the_o xi_o endeavour_v to_o turn_v that_o monarchy_n into_o tyranny_n be_v deserve_o impeach_v for_o malegovernment_n and_o therefore_o the_o state_n be_v assemble_v at_o turin_n they_o appoint_v thirty_o curator_n alias_o 20._o 16._o by_o who_o he_o shall_v be_v govern_v but_o he_o soon_o get_v quit_v of_o they_o because_o under_o pretence_n of_o the_o idol_n claronensis_n which_o he_o worship_v with_o great_a superstition_n he_o slight_v and_o ridicule_v all_o his_o oath_n and_o promise_n but_o with_o so_o much_o unsuccessfulness_n horror_n and_o unquietness_n even_o to_o his_o death_n that_o he_o sad_o experience_v which_o be_v the_o better_a and_o more_o happy_a condition_n to_o be_v love_v or_o fear_v of_o his_o subject_n take_v the_o sad_a example_n follow_v of_o perjury_n charles_n vii_o whilst_o yet_o the_o dauphin_n most_o wicked_o cause_v john_n the_o last_o duke_n of_o burgundy_n of_o the_o stock_n of_o the_o gallic_a king_n to_o be_v miserable_o slay_v in_o his_o presence_n contrary_a to_o all_o faith_n peace_n and_o friendship_n plight_v unto_o he_o a_o little_a before_o near_o melo_n dunum_fw-la i._n e._n melun_n this_o perjury_n be_v afterward_o expiate_v by_o the_o death_n of_o many_o million_o of_o soul_n almost_o to_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o charles_n himself_o the_o king_n reduce_v to_o that_o misery_n that_o he_o be_v disinherit_v of_o his_o father_n and_o see_v his_o capital_a enemy_n inaugurate_v by_o the_o kingdom_n at_o paris_n and_o from_o thence_o be_v rather_o rex_n biturigum_n i._n e._n king_n of_o a_o people_n of_o aquitane_n inhabit_v bourge_n than_o king_n of_o france_n at_o last_o be_v force_v to_o redeem_v his_o peace_n on_o shameful_a and_o dishonourable_a term_n as_o may_v appear_v in_o a_o treatise_n apud_fw-la atrabates_n with_o the_o people_n of_o the_o province_n of_o artois_n in_o which_o the_o king_n himself_o treat_v with_o duke_n philip_n son_n of_o the_o say_v murder_v john_n his_o subject_n this_o clause_n be_v
be_v manifest_a that_o the_o people_n even_o in_o such_o choice_n have_v their_o share_n their_o influence_n and_o their_o power_n also_o as_o in_o saul_n and_o all_o the_o people_n go_v to_o gilgal_n and_o there_o they_o make_v saul_n king_n before_o the_o lord_n in_o gilgal_n 1_o sam._n 10._o 15._o and_o several_a writer_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o saul_n be_v not_o only_o anoint_v with_o oil_n first_o private_o by_o samuel_n 1_o sam._n 10._o 12._o but_o also_o at_o two_o other_o time_n before_o the_o people_n once_o at_o mizpah_n a_o another_o time_n at_o gilgal_n so_o david_n though_o he_o be_v anoint_v of_o the_o lord_n by_o samuel_n yet_o all_o the_o m●n_z of_o israel_n come_v with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n to_o hebron_n and_o anoint_a david_n king_n over_o israel_n and_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o he_o before_o the_o lord_n 1_o chron._n 11._o 2._o &_o 12._o 38._o in_o sum_n many_o writer_n of_o several_a persuasion_n from_o these_o example_n conclude_v that_o the_o people_n under_o god_n make_v the_o king._n beside_o the_o want_n of_o the_o public_a stamp_n of_o the_o people_n make_v zimri_n who_o have_v usurp_v that_o title_n and_o office_n no_o king_n and_o yet_o make_v omri_n king_n 1_o king_n 16._o 16._o and_o those_o who_o the_o ruler_n of_o jezreel_n at_o samaria_n 2_o king_n 10._o refuse_v to_o make_v a_o king_n be_v no_o king_n this_o power_n of_o the_o people_n make_v athaliah_n a_o princess_n no_o princess_n by_o their_o translation_n of_o the_o crown_n to_o joah_n 2_o cron._n 23._o there_o be_v now_o no_o voice_n no_o immediate_a oracle_n from_o heaven_n no_o samuel_n no_o elisha_n no_o inspire_a prophet_n to_o anoint_v david_n not_o eliab_n solomon_n not_o adoniah_n no_o particular_a person_n and_o therefore_o no_o person_n can_v have_v a_o just_a title_n to_o crown_n but_o by_o choice_n and_o approbation_n public_a god_n have_v only_o ratify_v the_o kingly_a office_n and_o describe_v fit_a qualification_n viz._n man_n of_o truth_n hate_v covetousness_n etc._n etc._n exod._n 18._o 21._o deut._n 1._o 16_o 17._o but_o do_v not_o now_o name_n or_o appoint_v particular_a person_n but_o have_v leave_v it_o whole_o and_o free_o to_o the_o people_n to_o choose_v for_o themselves_o and_o make_v their_o own_o condition_n it_o be_v far_a observable_a that_o saul_n after_o samuel_n from_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v he_o remain_v a_o private_a person_n and_o no_o king_n till_o the_o people_n have_v elect_v and_o make_v he_o a_o king._n so_o david_n though_o anoint_v by_o the_o same_o divine_a authority_n yet_o remain_v formal_o a_o subject_a and_o not_o a_o king_n till_o israel_n make_v he_o king_n at_o hebron_n so_o solomon_n though_o by_o god_n design_v and_o ordain_v to_o be_v king_n yet_o never_o be_v king_n till_o the_o people_n make_v he_o king_n 1_o king_n 1_o what_o great_a demonstration_n can_v there_o possible_o be_v than_o such_o scriptural_a both_o precept_n and_o example_n as_o be_v here_o set_v down_o for_o justify_v of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o king_n and_o not_o only_o in_o the_o free_a choice_n of_o this_o or_o that_o person_n to_o the_o diadem_n or_o to_o this_o or_o that_o government_n but_o also_o in_o the_o alteration_n and_o grant_v of_o succession_n and_o in_o the_o change_n and_o alteration_n of_o the_o very_a form_n of_o government_n moreover_o by_o god_n own_v king_n to_o reign_v by_o he_o prov._n 8._o 16._o be_v no_o more_o than_o god_n general_a own_n and_o constitute_v all_o thing_n else_o viz._n thou_o be_v the_o greatness_n and_o the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n and_o the_o victory_n and_o the_o majesty_n for_o all_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v thou_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n o_o lord_n and_o thou_o be_v exalt_v above_o all_o both_o riches_n and_o honour_n come_v of_o thou_o and_o thou_o reign_v over_o all_o and_o in_o thy_o hand_n be_v power_n and_o might_n and_o in_o thy_o hand_n it_o be_v to_o make_v great_a and_o to_o give_v strength_n unto_o all_o 1_o chron._n 29._o 11_o 12._o this_o general_a right_n and_o power_n of_o the_o almighty_a do_v not_o abolish_v or_o impeach_v the_o natural_a right_n of_o his_o people_n in_o choose_v themselves_o a_o king_n on_o their_o own_o term_n and_o law_n woeful_a experience_n have_v teach_v they_o that_o to_o live_v by_o one_o man_n will_n will_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o man_n misery_n the_o truth_n whereof_o we_o see_v experience_v to_o this_o very_a day_n both_o in_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a empire_n which_o constrain_v they_o to_o devise_v law_n for_o the_o regulation_n of_o every_o man_n be_v just_a right_n that_o no_o man_n may_v by_o lawless_a dominion_n oppress_v another_o but_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v govern_v by_o their_o own_o consent_n by_o law_n of_o their_o own_o make_n respect_v always_o be_v have_v christianly_o speak_v to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o almighty_a cui_fw-la plus_fw-la licet_fw-la quam_fw-la par_fw-fr est_fw-la plus_fw-la vult_fw-la quam_fw-la licet_fw-la a_o people_n may_v be_v without_o a_o king_n but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o king_n without_o a_o people_n and_o therefore_o king_n not_o particular_o and_o immediate_o name_v by_o god_n must_v own_o their_o establishment_n and_o inthronization_n to_o the_o people_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v accountable_a in_o some_o case_n to_o they_o for_o they_o that_o give_v power_n be_v by_o just_a reason_n account_v great_a and_o more_o honourable_a than_o they_o that_o receive_v it_o according_a to_o that_o old_a maxim_n quicquid_fw-la efficit_fw-la tale_n est_fw-la magis_fw-la tale_n and_o though_o king_n be_v to_o be_v account_v singulis_fw-la majores_fw-la yet_o be_v universis_fw-la minores_fw-la for_o king_n be_v not_o patron_n of_o their_o kingly_a power_n but_o administrator_n and_o depute_a executioner_n thereof_o now_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n king_n have_v their_o authority_n from_o the_o people_n so_o to_o they_o they_o be_v of_o right_a to_o be_v accountable_a for_o they_o choose_v they_o and_o covenant_n with_o they_o for_o their_o own_o good_a if_o by_o god_n king_n do_v reign_v by_o god_n also_o the_o people_n have_v right_a and_o liberty_n to_o be_v govern_v how_o they_o please_v for_o the_o immediate_a appointment_n of_o king_n by_o god_n himself_o by_o his_o prophet_n be_v now_o cease_v the_o application_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o govern_v to_o this_o or_o that_o person_n be_v leave_v whole_o to_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o themselves_o be_v the_o right_n of_o king_n and_o of_o the_o people_n what_o it_o will_v from_o god_n they_o both_o equal_o derive_v it_o wherever_o the_o people_n create_v themselves_o a_o king_n by_o the_o same_o right_n he_o be_v accountable_a to_o they_o and_o it_o participate_v as_o much_o of_o divine_a right_n for_o the_o people_n to_o curb_v and_o oppose_v oppress_v wicked_a king_n as_o to_o make_v king_n according_a to_o the_o 149_o psalm_n 8_o 9_o to_o bind_v their_o king_n with_o chain_n and_o their_o noble_n with_o fetter_n of_o iron_n to_o execute_v upon_o they_o the_o judgement_n write_v this_o honour_n have_v all_o his_o saint_n nay_o god_n be_v own_o people_n on_o who_o he_o have_v set_v his_o love_n have_v his_o own_o command_n that_o when_o he_o have_v bring_v they_o into_o the_o land_n whither_o they_o be_v go_v to_o possess_v that_o they_o shall_v smite_v they_o and_o utter_o destroy_v they_o and_o show_v no_o mercy_n unto_o they_o deut._n 7._o 1_o 2._o king_n be_v constitute_v by_o god_n and_o man_n to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o for_o protection_n and_o comfort_n not_o for_o violence_n and_o oppression_n and_o it_o be_v by_o righteousness_n that_o the_o throne_n be_v establish_v and_o iniquity_n will_v be_v the_o ruin_n of_o any_o nation_n fury_n be_v not_o in_o he_o isaiah_n 27._o 4._o and_o god_n himself_o have_v give_v no_o power_n to_o king_n prince_n or_o potentate_n but_o what_o be_v just_a and_o honest_a and_o have_v tie_v they_o up_o and_o bind_v they_o by_o law_n viz._n he_o shall_v not_o multiply_v horse_n to_o himself_o he_o shall_v not_o multiply_v wife_n to_o himself_o that_o his_o heart_n turn_v not_o away_o neither_o shall_v be_v great_o multiply_v to_o himself_o silver_n and_o gold_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v when_o he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o kingdom_n that_o he_o shall_v write_v he_o a_o copy_n of_o this_o law_n in_o a_o book_n and_o he_o shall_v read_v therein_o all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v to_o fear_v the_o lord_n his_o god_n to_o keep_v all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n and_o these_o statute_n to_o do_v they_o that_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o lift_v up_o above_o his_o brethren_n and_o that_o he_o turn_v not_o aside_o from_o the_o
sit_v on_o throne_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o man_n as_o man_n choose_v from_o among_o themselves_o and_o if_o upon_o just_a occasion_n dethrone_v than_o they_o be_v but_o as_o one_o of_o themselves_o again_o moreover_o if_o god_n give_v king_n to_o be_v a_o ransom_n for_o his_o church_n as_o pharaoh_n king_n of_o egypt_n isaiah_n 43._o 3._o and_o slay_v famous_a king_n as_o sihon_n king_n of_o the_o amorites_n and_o og_n king_n of_o bashan_n psalm_n 136._o 18_o 19_o 20._o if_o he_o put_v a_o two-edged_a sword_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o saint_n to_o execute_v vengeance_n to_o bind_v their_o king_n in_o chain_n and_o their_o noble_n with_o fetter_n of_o iron_n to_o execute_v upon_o they_o the_o judgement_n write_v deut._n 7._o 1_o 2._o this_o honour_n have_v all_o his_o saint_n psalm_n 14._o 7_o 8_o 9_o if_o god_n plead_v with_o prince_n and_o king_n for_o have_v the_o spoil_n of_o the_o poor_a of_o his_o people_n in_o their_o house_n and_o for_o beat_v his_o people_n to_o piece_n and_o grind_v the_o face_n of_o the_o poor_a isaiah_n 3._o 13_o 14._o if_o god_n make_v babylon_n and_o her_o king_n a_o thresh_a floor_n for_o the_o violence_n do_v to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o zion_n and_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o zion_n and_o take_v vengeance_n for_o she_o and_o make_v babylon_n a_o heap_n a_o dwelling-place_n for_o dragon_n a_o astonishment_n and_o hiss_v without_o a_o inhabitant_n and_o make_v they_o roar_v like_o lion_n and_o yell_v like_o lion_n whelp_n jer._n 51._o 36_o 37_o 38._o then_o christian_a commonwealth_n as_o his_o people_n be_v more_o precious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n than_o king_n because_o they_o be_v king_n beside_o king_n be_v but_o single_a person_n and_o kingdom_n and_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o million_o and_o certes_o the_o life_n welfare_n and_o happiness_n of_o million_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o one_o though_o he_o shall_v be_v worth_a ten_o thousand_o of_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o outward_a splendour_n and_o pomp_n for_o there_o be_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n with_o god_n for_o all_o god_n delight_n be_v in_o saint-ship_n not_o in_o king-ship_n beside_o nature_n prompt_v unto_o a_o necessity_n of_o government_n but_o not_o unto_o kingly_a government_n for_o that_o innumerable_a people_n may_v and_o do_v live_v without_o a_o king_n but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o king_n without_o a_o people_n and_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o government_n and_o governor_n be_v preserve_v safe_a and_o entire_a in_o aristocracy_n or_o democracy_n in_o the_o people_n though_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o king_n beside_o the_o people_n be_v a_o people_n before_o there_o be_v any_o government_n paternal_a and_o domestic_a except_v and_o there_o be_v a_o people_n where_o there_o be_v no_o king_n but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o king_n without_o a_o people_n take_v away_o the_o people_n and_o dionysius_n the_o sicilian_a tyrant_n will_v be_v but_o a_o pitiful_a pedant_n take_v away_o the_o basis_n of_o a_o colossus_n though_o that_o of_o the_o sun_n at_o rhodes_n and_o the_o whole_a fabric_n and_o superstructure_n must_v necessary_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n if_o the_o people_n do_v but_o withdraw_v and_o recall_n their_o own_o power_n to_o its_o proper_a centre_n tarquin_n will_v quick_o quit_v rome_n beside_o how_o come_v they_o to_o be_v king_n be_v they_o create_v of_o any_o ●iner_a dust_n or_o be_v they_o redeem_v by_o a_o more_o precious_a blood_n than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o race_n of_o mankind_n drop_v they_o out_o of_o the_o sky_n or_o spring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o earth_n like_o mushroom_n in_o a_o night_n if_o not_o so_o nor_o so_o how_o come_v they_o by_o their_o kingly_a dignity_n even_o by_o the_o choice_n and_o gift_n of_o the_o people_n who_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o from_o among_o themselves_o to_o sit_v like_o a_o pilot_n to_o steer_v the_o government_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o govern_v and_o therefore_o they_o contribute_v all_o their_o eye_n ear_n hand_n foot_n nay_o their_o whole_a body_n and_o purse_n to_o exalt_v ennoble_v and_o enable_v he_o the_o better_a to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o to_o judge_v upright_o to_o plead_v their_o cause_n and_o to_o minister_v justice_n indifferent_o do_v king_n misbehave_v themselves_o then_o may_v also_o the_o people_n withdraw_v their_o eye_n ear_n hand_n foot_n strength_n purse_n and_o then_o king_n will_v be_v like_o one_o of_o themselves_o again_o see_v therefore_o king_n be_v make_v by_o the_o people_n and_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n and_o can_v subsist_v without_o the_o people_n and_o the_o end_n be_v more_o to_o be_v prefer_v than_o the_o mean_n why_o shall_v it_o seem_v strange_a to_o christian_n rational_a man_n that_o kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o and_o to_o be_v hold_v superior_a unto_o king_n king_n be_v give_v of_o god_n as_o gift_n for_o the_o preservation_n comfort_n and_o good_a of_o his_o people_n his_o choose_a his_o inheritance_n the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o the_o redeem_v of_o his_o own_o blood_n to_o be_v nursing-fathers_n to_o they_o and_o therefore_o must_v be_v of_o less_o esteem_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n than_o those_o to_o who_o and_o for_o who_o good_a and_o happiness_n they_o be_v give_v since_o the_o gift_n as_o the_o gift_n be_v in_o worth_n much_o less_o than_o kingdom_n for_o who_o sake_n king_n be_v give_v beside_o who_o by_o office_n be_v oblige_v to_o fight_v the_o kingdom_n battle_n by_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o and_o to_o jeopard_v their_o life_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n must_v be_v inferior_a to_o the_o people_n moreover_o the_o royal_a legislative_a power_n be_v joint_a and_o coordinate_a with_o king_n and_o people_n and_o consequent_o the_o power_n also_o and_o so_o no_o necessity_n to_o fetch_v a_o royal_a power_n from_o heaven_n to_o be_v immediate_o infuse_v in_o they_o see_v the_o people_n have_v such_o a_o power_n in_o themselves_o the_o people_n in_o all_o well_o constitute_v kingdom_n can_v and_o do_v limit_n and_o bind_v royal_a power_n by_o law_n and_o those_o who_o can_v limit_v and_o take_v away_o can_v give_v power_n and_o it_o be_v ahsurd_a to_o conceive_v that_o the_o people_n can_v put_v restraint_n upon_o power_n immediate_o derive_v from_o god._n though_o king_n command_n in_o some_o sense_n the_o people_n by_o their_o executive_a power_n of_o the_o law_n above_o they_o yet_o the_o people_n have_v the_o original_a and_o natural_a power_n above_o they_o because_o they_o make_v king_n and_o in_o god_n intention_n king_n be_v give_v whole_o and_o entire_o for_o their_o good_a and_o if_o king_n do_v not_o so_o execute_v they_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v make_v void_a and_o frustrate_v the_o whole_a design_n of_o their_o government_n institute_v and_o establish_v by_o god_n and_o man_n and_o forfeit_v their_o right_n of_o govern_v the_o people_n give_v to_o king_n a_o politic_a power_n for_o their_o own_o safety_n and_o quiet_a live_n and_o they_o keep_v their_o natural_a power_n to_o themselves_o of_o which_o they_o can_v divest_v themselves_o and_o they_o do_v not_o break_v their_o covenant_n nor_o their_o law_n when_o they_o execute_v natural_a power_n for_o their self_o preservation_n the_o people_n by_o their_o original_a or_o natural_a power_n make_v king_n after_o king_n as_o when_o saul_n die_v they_o make_v david_n at_o hebron_n after_o he_o solomon_n after_o he_o rehoboam_n and_o so_o on_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v more_o fountain_n and_o natural_a power_n of_o royalty_n in_o the_o people_n than_o in_o david_n saul_n or_o any_o king_n in_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v not_o any_o where_o read_v that_o saul_n or_o any_o other_o king_n make_v a_o other_o absolute_a king._n those_o tribunal_n that_o make_v king_n must_v necessary_o be_v above_o king_n and_o though_o there_o be_v no_o tribunal_n formal_o above_o king_n yet_o there_o be_v natural_o and_o virtual_o a_o power_n in_o the_o people_n in_o those_o who_o have_v a_o joint_a coordinate_a power_n in_o the_o legislative_a power_n and_o share_v in_o the_o executive_a part_n of_o the_o law_n as_o all_o officer_n of_o kingdom_n have_v to_o erect_v a_o tribunal_n over_o they_o it_o be_v false_a and_o absurd_a to_o conceive_v that_o any_o people_n have_v or_o can_v lawful_o resign_v their_o whole_a liberty_n into_o the_o hand_n and_o power_n of_o any_o royal_a or_o other_o government_n it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n so_o to_o do_v obj._n nemo_n that_o quod_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la for_o the_o people_n have_v not_o a_o absolute_a power_n to_o destroy_v themselves_o or_o to_o authorise_v violence_n oppression_n injustice_n or_o other_o act_n of_o tyranny_n and_o therefore_o can_v resign_v it_o to_o
any_o government_n no_o more_o have_v king_n for_o neither_o god_n nor_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n have_v give_v any_o such_o power_n to_o men._n and_o god_n give_v king_n as_o a_o blessing_n and_o happy_o as_o the_o best_a of_o government_n but_o if_o thereby_o the_o state_n of_o slavery_n must_v uncontrolable_o be_v entail_v upon_o they_o as_o it_o necessary_o must_v be_v if_o they_o renounce_v their_o whole_a liberty_n it_o be_v a_o curse_n rather_o than_o a_o blessing_n but_o they_o can_v no_o more_o give_v it_o away_o than_o they_o can_v give_v away_o their_o rational_a nature_n and_o deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v reasonable_a creature_n for_o it_o be_v a_o power_n natural_a to_o preserve_v themselves_o essential_o adhere_v to_o every_o create_v be_v beside_o they_o can_v resign_v their_o whole_a power_n as_o priest_n will_v have_v they_o without_o manifest_a sin_n god_n have_v make_v a_o express_a covenant_n with_o all_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o peculiar_a people_n and_o he_o will_v be_v their_o god_n the_o purport_n of_o which_o covenant_n be_v that_o all_o the_o people_n shall_v take_v care_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v pure_o worship_v throughout_o all_o the_o land_n which_o power_n they_o can_v resign_v to_o king_n unaccountable_o and_o absolute_o without_o manifest_a breach_n of_o covenant_n and_o so_o sin_n in_o break_v covevant_n with_o god_n and_o thereby_o provoke_v his_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n will_v pull_v down_o vengeance_n upon_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o which_o more_o full_o hereafter_o o_o sovereignty_n be_v not_o in_o the_o people_n no_o more_o than_o a_o whole_a kingdom_n can_v be_v one_o man_n sovereignty_n be_v the_o abstract_n and_o sovereign_n be_v the_o concrete_a what_o then_o yet_o the_o power_n of_o give_v sovereign_a power_n to_o this_o or_o that_o man_n according_a to_o law_n be_v natural_o and_o radical_o in_o the_o people_n obj_fw-la 〈◊〉_d may_n 4_o car._n 1628._o the_o commons_o have_v frame_v a_o petition_n of_o right_a to_o be_v present_v to_o his_o majesty_n and_o desire_v the_o concurrence_n of_o the_o lord_n they_o make_v this_o addition_n viz._n we_o present_v this_o our_o humble_a petition_n to_o your_o majesty_n with_o the_o care_n not_o only_o of_o our_o own_o ●_z but_o with_o due_a regard_n to_o leave_v entire_a that_o sovereign_a power_n wherewith_o your_o majesty_n be_v trust_v for_o the_o protection_n safety_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o people_n which_o term_n of_o sovereign_a power_n be_v so_o distasteful_a and_o chagreen_a to_o the_o commons_o that_o they_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n admit_v of_o they_o allege_v for_o their_o justification_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v another_o distinct_a power_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o law_n they_o be_v never_o use_v in_o any_o parliamentary_a petition_n or_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la or_o in_o any_o confirmation_n thereof_o if_o they_o shall_v grant_v it_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o imply_v a_o sovereign_a power_n above_o our_o know_a and_o establish_v law_n which_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o kingdom_n but_o they_o know_v no_o sovereign_a power_n it_o be_v a_o new_a thing_n and_o they_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n have_v it_o insert_v into_o the_o petition_n and_o the_o statute_n of_o magna_fw-la charta_fw-la do_v bind_v the_o king_n and_o all_o his_o sovereign_a power_n upon_o which_o ground_n it_o be_v leave_v out_o beside_o title_n of_o supreme_a and_o sovereign_a be_v verba_fw-la solemnia_fw-la word_n of_o course_n titular_a and_o complemental_a relate_v only_o to_o their_o person_n but_o confer_v no_o power_n what_o sovereign_a power_n king_n have_v be_v give_v and_o limit_v by_o law_n of_o common_a consent_n and_o not_o absolute_a what_o other_o law_n of_o sovereignty_n there_o be_v of_o right_n belong_v to_o they_o nemo_fw-la sit_fw-la be_v past_o all_o understanding_n absolute_a sovereignty_n in_o king_n have_v no_o warrant_n by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n that_o belong_v to_o god_n only_o who_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o sovereign_a power_n wherewith_o majesty_n be_v entrust_v either_o by_o god_n or_o man_n but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v for_o the_o protection_n safety_n and_o happiness_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v the_o suprema_fw-la lex_fw-la and_o the_o cause_n be_v very_o reasonable_a for_o that_o uncontrollable_a authority_n easy_o degenerate_v into_o tyranny_n and_o that_o sovereign_a power_n which_o be_v in_o all_o government_n be_v in_o the_o legislative_a power_n of_o that_o government_n settle_v by_o law_n of_o common_a consent_n and_o king_n james_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n march_z 1609._o stigmatize_v power_n not_o bound_v by_o law_n with_o the_o black_a character_n of_o tyranny_n yea_o tyranny_n accompany_v with_o perjury_n obj._n the_o people_n have_v not_o power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n what_o then_o no_o more_o have_v king_n until_o impower_v by_o law_n of_o common_a consent_n yet_o the_o power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n be_v eminent_o and_o virtual_o in_o the_o people_n collective_o take_v though_o not_o formal_o yet_o they_o have_v power_n over_o their_o own_o life_n radical_o and_o virtual_o for_o that_o they_o may_v subject_v themselves_o to_o magistracy_n and_o to_o law_n make_v by_o common_a consent_n the_o violation_n of_o which_o may_v be_v capital_a and_o sanguinary_a and_o king_n have_v no_o other_o lawful_a power_n over_o the_o life_n of_o their_o subject_n but_o by_o law_n make_v by_o like_o common_a consent_n that_o under_o the_o law_n and_o since_o there_o have_v be_v mutual_a and_o reciprocal_a covenant_n between_o king_n and_o people_n be_v without_o all_o dispute_n and_o beyond_o all_o contradiction_n 2_o sam._n 5._o 3._o 1_o chron._n 11._o 3._o 2_o chron._n 23._o 2._o 2_o king_n 11._o 17._o and_o that_o they_o be_v as_o equal_o and_o reciprocal_o bind_v be_v as_o true_a else_o why_o shall_v such_o covenant_n be_v make_v public_o before_o the_o people_n if_o king_n do_v not_o in_o the_o covenant_n tie_v and_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o the_o people_n and_o why_o so_o solemn_o to_o be_v make_v before_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n if_o not_o intend_v to_o be_v keep_v or_o may_v uncontrolable_o break_v they_o at_o pleasure_n be_v god_n to_o be_v call_v upon_o and_o to_o be_v a_o witness_n to_o a_o figment_n nay_o to_o a_o cheat_n ab_fw-la sit_fw-la no_o all_o the_o covenant_n mention_v in_o holy_a writ_n whether_o between_o god_n and_o king_n or_o between_o king_n and_o people_n be_v mutual_a i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o poople_n levit._n 26._o 12._o the_o covenant_n be_v so_o strict_o mutual_a that_o if_o the_o people_n break_v the_o covenant_n god_n be_v free_v from_o his_o part_n of_o the_o covenant_n zach._n 11._o 10._o all_o covenanter_n be_v under_o a_o law_n before_o men._n so_o if_o king_n break_v covenant_n with_o their_o people_n the_o people_n be_v free_v of_o their_o obligation_n to_o they_o if_o the_o oath_n of_o god_n be_v break_v as_o the_o covenant_n between_o abraham_n and_o abimelech_n gen._n 21._o 22_o 23._o jonathan_n and_o david_n 1_o sam._n 18._o 3._o so_o the_o spy_n profess_v to_o rahab_n in_o the_o covenant_n that_o they_o make_v to_o she_o josh_n 2._o 20._o and_o if_o thou_o utter_v this_o our_o business_n we_o will_v be_v quit_v of_o thy_o oath_n which_o thou_o have_v make_v we_o to_o swear_v the_o obligation_n of_o king_n in_o their_o oath_n and_o covenant_n to_o the_o govern_v flow_v from_o the_o peculiar_a obligation_n national_a betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o govern_v and_o bind_v king_n as_o king_n for_o that_o such_o oath_n and_o covenant_n be_v enter_v into_o and_o take_v in_o relation_n to_o government_n only_o and_o therefore_o be_v not_o take_v mere_o as_o man_n as_o some_o vain_o suppose_v but_o as_o king_n or_o as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v king_n over_o they_o because_o it_o be_v the_o specific_a act_n of_o king_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v oblige_v unto_o to_o govern_v the_o people_n in_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n with_o their_o royal_a power_n which_o be_v give_v they_o by_o the_o people_n for_o no_o other_o end_n and_o they_o undoubted_o sin_n before_o god_n if_o they_o break_v their_o oath_n and_o covenant_n make_v with_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o to_o assert_v otherways_o be_v to_o suppose_v king_n to_o be_v under_o no_o law_n of_o god_n and_o so_o consequent_o make_v they_o either_o above_o god_n or_o coequal_a with_o he_o which_o be_v no_o other_o than_o downright_a blasphemy_n therefore_o it_o be_v undoubted_o true_a that_o king_n covenant_v with_o the_o people_n to_o govern_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o municiple_n law_n and_o on_o that_o condition_n receive_v throne_n crown_n tribute_n etc._n etc._n from_o they_o and_o be_v
pulpit_n it_o that_o if_o they_o do_v break_v their_o covenant_n yet_o they_o be_v accountable_a to_o none_o but_o god_n what_o be_v this_o less_o than_o like_a false_a prophet_n to_o create_v subtlety_n and_o coin_n evasion_n to_o rob_v kingdom_n of_o their_o law_n liberty_n and_o religion_n and_o to_o seduce_v and_o betray_v king_n to_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n even_o to_o tophet_n it-self_n a_o very_a trick_n to_o tempt_v king_n to_o break_v covenant_n and_o perjure_n themselves_o chap._n viii_o judges-not_a less_o essential_o judge_n and_o the_o immediate_a vicar_n of_o god_n than_o king_n what_o power_n and_o prerogative_n king_n have_v they_o have_v they_o from_o the_o people_n the_o people_n prerogative_n they_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o law_n of_o their_o own_o make_n quas_fw-la vulgus_fw-la eligerit_fw-la judges_n be_v not_o less_o essential_o judge_n and_o the_o immediate_a vicar_n of_o god_n than_o king_n they_o who_o judge_n in_o the_o room_n of_o god_n and_o exercise_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v as_o essential_o judge_n and_o the_o deputy_n of_o god_n as_o king_n inferior_a judge_n appoint_v by_o king_n jehosaphat_n be_v command_v by_o he_o to_o take_v heed_n what_o they_o do_v for_o you_o judge_v not_o for_o man_n but_o for_o the_o lord_n 2_o chron._n 19_o 6._o by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v deputy_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o the_o king_n deputy_n in_o the_o formal_a and_o official_a act_n of_o judge_v and_o so_o own_a by_o the_o king_n himself_o if_o they_o be_v not_o than_o king_n may_v command_v his_o judge_n as_o his_o servant_n to_o give_v what_o judgement_n they_o please_v but_o king_n ought_v not_o to_o guide_v or_o limit_v the_o conscience_n of_o inferior_a judge_n because_o the_o judgement_n be_v not_o the_o king_n but_o the_o lord_n the_o reason_n be_v demonstrable_a for_o that_o king_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o command_v any_o other_o to_o do_v that_o as_o king_n for_o the_o do_v whereof_o he_o have_v no_o power_n from_o god_n himself_o moses_n appoint_a judge_n but_o not_o as_o his_o deputy_n to_o judge_v and_o give_v sentence_n as_o subordinate_a to_o moses_n for_o the_o judgement_n say_v he_o be_v the_o lord_n not_o i_o deut._n 1._o 17._o and_o their_o direction_n to_o guide_v they_o in_o judgement_n be_v from_o god_n himself_o by_o moses_n viz._n you_o shall_v not_o respect_v person_n in_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n yet_o the_o judge_n may_v quodam_fw-la sensu_fw-la be_v term_v deputy_n of_o the_o king_n because_o they_o have_v their_o external_a call_n from_o they_o if_o king_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v because_o they_o be_v power_n from_o god_n so_o be_v inferior_a magistrate_n also_o for_o they_o also_o be_v power_n ordain_v of_o god._n by_o i_o king_n reign_n and_o prince_n decree_v justice_n by_o i_o prince_n rule_v and_o noble_n even_o all_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n prov._n 8._o 15_o 16._o by_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o power_n of_o judge_n nobles_z prince_n etc._n etc._n all_o officer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n not_o of_o the_o king_n be_v as_o real_o and_o true_o from_o god_n as_o that_o of_o king_n and_o differ_v not_o in_o nature_n from_o that_o of_o king_n but_o secundum_fw-la magis_fw-la &_o minus_fw-la only_o both_o be_v power_n ordain_v of_o god_n and_o to_o resist_v either_o be_v to_o resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n both_o be_v minister_n of_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o govern_v both_o oblige_v so_o to_o govern_v that_o the_o govern_v for_o who_o good_a they_o be_v equal_o entrust_v may_v lead_v a_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n 1_o tim._n 2._o 2._o and_o to_o judge_v righteous_o between_o every_o man_n and_o his_o neighbour_n and_o not_o to_o respect_v person_n in_o judgement_n but_o to_o hear_v the_o small_a as_o well_o as_o the_o great_a and_o not_o to_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o face_n of_o man_n and_o the_o judgement_n administer_v by_o all_o be_v god_n 2_o chron._n 19_o 6._o deut._n 17._o 19_o 20._o isaiah_n 1._o 17._o and_o god_n ow_v inferior_a judge_n as_o a_o congregation_n of_o god_n psalm_n 82._o a_o senate_n of_o king_n not_o so_o style_v any_o where_o yet_o all_o be_v equal_o call_v god_n john_n 10._o 35._o and_o that_o right_o for_o as_o king_n be_v god_n deputy_n by_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o people_n so_o inferior_a judge_n be_v god_n deputy_n also_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o king_n and_o of_o the_o people_n and_o we_o find_v that_o judge_n be_v some_o time_n choose_v by_o the_o people_n so_o jepthah_n be_v make_v judge_n than_o jepthah_n go_v with_o the_o elder_n of_o gilead_n and_o the_o people_n make_v he_o head_n and_o captain_n over_o they_o judg._n 11._o 11._o but_o that_o god_n give_v power_n of_o tyrannize_a to_o king_n so_o as_o they_o can_v be_v resist_v or_o call_v to_o a_o account_n which_o he_o give_v not_o to_o judge_n can_v be_v make_v out_o by_o any_o scripture_n what_o scripture_n do_v warrant_n that_o the_o people_n may_v rise_v up_o in_o arm_n to_o defend_v themselves_o against_o moses_n gideon_n ely_n samuel_n and_o other_o judge_n shall_v they_o have_v oppress_v or_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o people_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o resist_v the_o most_o tyrannical_a king_n of_o israel_n judah_n and_o yet_o lawful_a to_o resist_v oppress_v and_o tyrannical_a judge_n but_o certain_o god_n almighty_a that_o make_v the_o whole_a creation_n not_o only_o for_o his_o own_o glory_n but_o also_o for_o the_o good_a and_o happiness_n of_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n will_v never_o give_v any_o power_n to_o kingly_a or_o any_o other_o form_n of_o government_n to_o oppress_v and_o tyrannize_v over_o the_o govern_v uncontrolable_o and_o unaccountable_o who_o blood_n be_v always_o precious_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o in_o who_o be_v all_o his_o delight_n it_o be_v monstrous_a so_o to_o conceive_v and_o derogatory_n to_o the_o very_a mercy_n justice_n and_o purity_n of_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v create_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o the_o comfort_n and_o solace_n of_o mankind_n in_o general_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n subject_v they_o to_o king_n to_o be_v use_v as_o slave_n or_o which_o be_v as_o bad_a not_o to_o be_v resist_v or_o not_o to_o be_v accountable_a to_o any_o human_a power_n if_o they_o at_o any_o time_n shall_v tyrannize_v certain_o such_o opiniator_n and_o preacher_n of_o such_o doctrine_n do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o frustrate_v and_o defeat_v the_o whole_a design_n of_o the_o creation_n which_o be_v design_v for_o the_o benefit_n joy_n and_o delight_n of_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n in_o general_n and_o by_o this_o doctrine_n it_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o every_o pettish_a haughty_a prince_n to_o make_v every_o principality_n every_o kingdom_n a_o aceldama_n a_o golgetha_n a_o iron_n furnace_n a_o egyptian_a slavery_n what_o not_o which_o god_n the_o great_a and_o wise_a creator_n abhor_v and_o manifest_v his_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n against_o it_o by_o pour_v his_o severe_a and_o manifold_a judgement_n upon_o that_o very_a nation_n which_o plead_v nay_o hector_v for_o his_o prerogative_n so_o long_o with_o god_n himself_o till_o he_o overwhelm_v he_o and_o all_o his_o host_n with_o his_o prerogative_n in_o the_o red_a sea._n obj._n abstracta_fw-la concretis_fw-la sunt_fw-la puriora_fw-la &_o perfectioria_n the_o power_n that_o king_n have_v they_o have_v it_o from_o the_o people_n who_o make_v they_o king_n and_o they_o have_v no_o absolute_a power_n over_o themselves_o can_v contribute_v any_o such_o power_n to_o king_n the_o power_n that_o the_o people_n have_v be_v only_o natural_a and_o legal_a and_o political_n viz._n to_o make_v and_o submit_v to_o such_o law_n as_o may_v preserve_v themselves_o in_o peace_n and_o godliness_n and_o from_o unjust_a violence_n and_o oppression_n by_o the_o conduct_n and_o management_n of_o good_a ruler_n now_o absolute_a power_n above_o a_o law_n be_v a_o power_n to_o do_v ill_a and_o to_o destroy_v nation_n which_o no_o people_n have_v it_o be_v against_o nature_n that_o any_o shall_v have_v a_o power_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o destroy_v themselves_o therefore_o though_o the_o people_n shall_v invest_v king_n with_o all_o the_o power_n that_o they_o have_v yet_o if_o king_n tyrannize_v over_o the_o people_n to_o their_o hurt_n and_o destruction_n they_o usurp_v a_o power_n which_o the_o people_n never_o give_v they_o it_o not_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o give_v they_o the_o power_n itself_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o consequent_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o that_o all_o act_n of_o tyranny_n be_v oppression_n
and_o sinful_a injustice_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v from_o god._n dum_fw-la contra_fw-la officium_fw-la facit_fw-la magistratus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la magistratus_fw-la quip_n à_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la injuria_fw-la sed_fw-la jus_o nasci_fw-la debet_fw-la and_o consequent_o they_o who_o resist_v the_o tyrannous_a act_n of_o king_n do_v not_o resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god._n what_o be_v it_o less_o than_o blasphemous_o to_o charge_n god_n with_o prevaricate_a with_o his_o people_n if_o in_o authorise_a king_n to_o preserve_v they_o shall_v give_v they_o liberty_n without_o all_o politic_a restraint_n to_o destroy_v they_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o god_n end_n in_o the_o five_o commandment_n that_o one_o man_n a_o king_n shall_v have_v absolute_a power_n to_o destroy_v million_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n uncontrolable_o if_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o judah_n be_v under_o censure_n and_o rebuke_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o sin_v against_o god_n and_o the_o people_n in_o reject_v such_o rebuke_n and_o in_o persecute_v the_o prophet_n and_o be_v under_o and_o liable_a to_o all_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o all_o other_o people_n though_o their_o subject_n be_v then_o be_v their_o power_n not_o above_o any_o law_n nor_o absolute_a that_o these_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v true_a sit_fw-la libre_fw-la judex_n samuel_n rebuke_v saul_n nathan_n david_n elias_n achab._n jeremiah_n be_v send_v to_o prophecy_n against_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n jer._n 1._o 18._o and_o the_o prophet_n practise_v it_o jer._n 19_o 3._o ahab_n can_v not_o take_v naboth_n vineyard_n against_o his_o will_n without_o the_o formality_n of_o law_n and_o without_o the_o help_n of_o man_n of_o belial_n to_o boot_v for_o which_o violence_n offer_v to_o law_n and_o justice_n in_o the_o place_n where_o dog_n lick_v the_o blood_n of_o naboth_n shed_v by_o sham_v of_o law_n by_o innuendo_n and_o false_a construction_n of_o law_n the_o dog_n do_v lick_v the_o blood_n of_o ahab_n and_o do_v eat_v that_o curse_a woman_n jezabel_n by_o the_o wall_n of_o jezrael_n and_o her_o carcase_n become_v as_o dung_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o field_n a_o document_n to_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o give_v any_o countenance_n to_o violence_n or_o oppression_n or_o to_o sham_v any_o law_n by_o any_o irresistible_a or_o prevalent_a influence_n and_o the_o inferior_a judge_n ought_v not_o to_o accept_v the_o person_n of_o any_o in_o judgement_n whether_o small_a or_o great_a for_o the_o judgement_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o their_o office_n as_o much_o of_o divine_a right_a as_o that_o of_o the_o king_n then_o certain_o we_o may_v just_o conclude_v that_o kingly_a power_n be_v neither_o above_o law_n nor_o yet_o absolute_a for_o king_n who_o swear_v to_o govern_v according_a to_o law_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o common_a sense_n nay_o impossible_a they_o shall_v have_v a_o illimited_a or_o absolute_a power_n either_o from_o god_n or_o the_o people_n for_o foedus_fw-la conditionatum_fw-la or_o promissio_fw-la conditionalis_fw-la mutua_fw-la facit_fw-la jus_o alteri_fw-la in_o alterum_fw-la it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o king_n can_v at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o same_o breath_n just_o swear_v to_o govern_v according_a to_o law_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n interpretative_o and_o secondary_o swear_v to_o govern_v absolute_o and_o without_o law._n if_o the_o govern_v in_o senate_n parliament_n and_o diet_n may_v call_v in_o question_n the_o act_n previledge_n charter_n and_o commission_n of_o king_n grant_v to_o any_o person_n and_o null_n and_o vacate_v they_o circumscribe_v and_o dock_n any_o of_o their_o prerogative_n may_v increase_v or_o diminish_v his_o revenue_n and_o state_n may_v call_v into_o question_n any_o of_o his_o friend_n counsellor_n or_o minister_n of_o state_n and_o punish_v or_o remove_v they_o if_o the_o govern_a may_v appeal_v from_o king_n to_o senate_n diet_n or_o parliament_n and_o may_v not_o appeal_v from_o they_o to_o king_n all_o which_o may_v and_o have_v be_v do_v as_o the_o public_a monument_n of_o law_n do_v testify_v who_o of_o sound_a judgement_n can_v deny_v the_o power_n of_o the_o people_n in_o diet_n senate_n and_o parliament_n to_o be_v above_o that_o of_o king_n if_o in_o a_o interregnum_fw-la senate_n diet_n and_o parliament_n have_v power_n and_o which_o be_v plain_a by_o history_n without_o regard_n have_v to_o right_v of_o inheritance_n have_v create_v king_n who_o they_o please_v and_o alter_v succession_n in_o sum_n if_o diet_n senate_n parliament_n be_v the_o supreme_a council_n of_o nation_n constitute_v by_o the_o people_n endue_v with_o power_n from_o they_o to_o this_o very_a thing_n that_o they_o may_v consult_v in_o common_a of_o the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o kingdom_n and_o common_a good_a and_o king_n therefore_o create_v that_o they_o shall_v see_v execute_v what_o they_o do_v advise_v and_o agree_v upon_o quis_fw-la nisi_fw-la mentis_fw-la inops_fw-la can_v deny_v upon_o such_o plain_a evidence_n and_o demonstration_n that_o the_o people_n in_o parliament_n diet_n and_o senate_n be_v not_o only_o coordinate_a and_o have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o government_n but_o be_v also_o in_o some_o sense_n and_o some_o place_n superior_a to_o they_o for_o that_o they_o can_v do_v more_o than_o king_n king_n have_v their_o prerogative_n true_a and_o very_o fit_a they_o shall_v have_v so_o have_v all_o other_o government_n be_v their_o prerogative_n what_o they_o will_v power_n of_o the_o militia_n make_v war_n and_o peace_n call_v of_o council_n diet_n synod_n senate_n parliament_n nominate_v judge_n and_o other_o public_a officer_n of_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v all_o derive_v from_o the_o people_n and_o transfer_v for_o their_o own_o good_a and_o so_o always_o express_v or_o imply_v if_o they_o make_v ill_a use_n of_o the_o militia_n it_o be_v a_o breach_n of_o trust_n and_o no_o obligation_n of_o obedience_n and_o submission_n be_v due_a if_o they_o make_v ill_a league_n the_o people_n not_o bind_v to_o confirm_v or_o assist_v if_o they_o call_v diet_n and_o parliament_n it_o be_v not_o for_o their_o peculiar_a interest_n but_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a and_o nothing_o do_v therein_o can_v be_v of_o force_n unless_o the_o free_a assent_n of_o the_o convocate_v be_v first_o have_v which_o demonstrate_v it_o be_v the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o king_n to_o call_v those_o great_a council_n as_o oft_o as_o the_o people_n see_v cause_n and_o desire_v it_o and_o to_o continue_v they_o till_o they_o have_v the_o benefit_n design_v and_o though_o the_o royal_a assent_n be_v desire_v it_o be_v but_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o business_n for_o what_o concern_v common_a good_a safety_n and_o liberty_n they_o ought_v to_o pass_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o oath_n and_o office._n non_fw-la negabimus_fw-la non_fw-la differimus_fw-la cuique_fw-la jus_o aut_fw-la justitiam_fw-la chartae_fw-la artic._n c._n 29._o will_v not_o king_n deny_v justice_n and_o may_v they_o deny_v just_a law_n not_o to_o private_a person_n and_o yet_o to_o the_o representative_n of_o nation_n not_o in_o the_o inferior_a court_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o supreme_a they_o be_v create_v and_o elect_a king_n that_o they_o shall_v do_v justice_n to_o all_o indifferent_o bracton_n l._n 3._o c._n 9_o ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la creatus_fw-la &_o electus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la justitiam_fw-la faciat_fw-la universis_fw-la per_fw-la eas_fw-la nimirum_fw-la leges_fw-la quas_fw-la vulgus_fw-la elegerit_fw-la hence_o in_o archivis_fw-la h._n 4._o rot._n parl._n n_o o._n 59_o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr ulla_fw-la regis_fw-la prerogativa_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la justitia_fw-la &_o aequitate_fw-la quicquam_fw-la derogat_fw-la king_n have_v no_o prerogative_n which_o derogate_a from_o justice_n and_o equity_n and_o when_o king_n have_v refuse_v to_o make_v or_o confirm_v magnas_fw-la chartas_n good_a law_n they_o have_v be_v compel_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o such_o law_n account_v as_o good_a and_o valid_a by_o the_o best_a lawyer_n the_o reason_n give_v be_v that_o they_o of_o right_a and_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n ought_v to_o have_v assent_v unto_o that_o which_o they_o be_v force_v to_o do_v all_o court_n of_o judicatory_a be_v authorize_v and_o confirm_v by_o parliament_n in_o which_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o mean_a of_o subject_n to_o implead_v king_n in_o which_o court_v judgement_n be_v often_o give_v against_o king_n which_o though_o endeavour_v to_o be_v contradict_v or_o countermand_v by_o king_n yet_o the_o judge_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o by_o their_o oath_n be_v oblige_v to_o refuse_v their_o mandamus_n and_o to_o give_v right_a judgement_n for_o the_o judgement_n be_v the_o lord_n king_n can_v just_o imprison_v no_o man_n nor_o punish_v any_o man_n nor_o seize_v their_o good_n or_o estate_n without_o citation_n out_o of_o court_n where_o the_o judge_n not_o king_n have_v all_o the_o power_n so_o
tyranny_n which_o conspiracy_n though_o act_v so_o very_o private_o and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o stealth_n yet_o blame_v neither_o by_o god_n nor_o man_n but_o justify_v by_o all_o writer_n both_o sacred_a and_o profane_a and_o the_o success_n answer_v the_o end_n design_v as_o the_o king_n so_o all_o israel_n as_o one_o man_n the_o several_a city_n as_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o their_o magistrate_n do_v covenant_n with_o god_n to_o keep_v his_o law_n etc._n etc._n joshua_n when_o old_a and_o near_a his_o end_n congregat_v all_o israel_n in_o sechem_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v there_o and_o call_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n and_o for_o their_o head_n and_o for_o their_o judge_n and_o for_o their_o officer_n and_o they_o present_v themselves_o before_o god_n josh_n 24._o 1._o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o serve_v he_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o people_n answer_v and_o say_v god_n forbid_v that_o we_o shall_v forsake_v the_o lord_n to_o serve_v other_o god_n ver_fw-la 14._o 16._o and_o joshua_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n you_o be_v witness_v yourselves_o that_o you_o have_v choose_v you_o the_o lord_n to_o serve_v he_o and_o they_o say_v we_o be_v witness_n ver_fw-la 22._o so_o joshua_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o the_o lord_n that_o day_n and_o set_v they_o a_o statute_n and_o a_o ordinance_n in_o sechem_n and_o joshua_n write_v these_o word_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o take_v a_o great_a stone_n and_o set_v it_o up_o there_o under_o a_o oak_n that_o be_v by_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o joshua_n say_v unto_o all_o the_o people_n behold_v this_o stone_n shall_v be_v a_o witness_n unto_o we_o for_o it_o have_v hear_v all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o he_o speak_v unto_o we_o it_o shall_v be_v therefore_o a_o witness_n unto_o you_o lest_o you_o deny_v your_o god_n ver_fw-la 24_o 25_o 26_o 27._o hence_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o as_o every_o individual_a person_n so_o more_o especial_o all_o officer_n in_o a_o kingdom_n that_o have_v any_o public_a authority_n ought_v every_o one_o in_o their_o several_a station_n to_o take_v care_n that_o god_n law_n be_v fulfil_v and_o of_o the_o people_n happiness_n which_o officer_n be_v officer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n from_o who_o they_o have_v their_o authority_n according_a to_o law_n of_o their_o own_o make_n and_o to_o they_o they_o be_v accountable_a if_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v back_o than_o all_o of_o the_o congregation_n of_o israel_n be_v to_o be_v summon_v and_o consult_v and_o to_o give_v their_o help_n 1_o chron._n 13._o 2_o chron._n 15._o so_o if_o a_o temple_n be_v to_o be_v build_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o father_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o captain_n of_o thousand_o and_o of_o hundred_o with_o the_o ruler_n be_v summon_v and_o move_v to_o offer_v willing_o 1_o chron._n 29._o so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o power_n commit_v to_o king_n to_o alter_v or_o change_v the_o law_n covenant_n or_o worship_n of_o god._n so_o in_o the_o covenant_n under_o joah_n and_o josiah_n between_o god_n the_o king_n and_o the_o people_n all_o the_o kingdom_n be_v present_a and_o all_o be_v particular_o bind_v to_o keep_v and_o stand_v to_o the_o covenant_n so_o that_o not_o the_o king_n only_o but_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o the_o kingdom_n in_o general_a only_o but_o all_o the_o part_n thereof_o promise_v faith_n and_o allegiance_n to_o god_n almighty_a not_o the_o king_n only_o but_o israel_n not_o israel_n only_o but_o the_o city_n and_o chief_a governor_n of_o they_o do_v secret_o bind_v themselves_o to_o god_n to_o do_v he_o homage_n and_o liege_n service_n against_o all_o infractor_n of_o his_o law_n 2_o kin._n 11._o 23._o 2_o chron._n 23._o for_o example_n libnah_n revolt_v from_o jehoram_n because_o he_o have_v forsake_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o his_o father_n 2_o chron._n 21._o 10._o so_o mattathias_n and_o all_o they_o that_o flee_v from_o the_o persecution_n of_o antiochus_n join_v themselves_o together_o and_o smite_v sinful_a man_n in_o their_o anger_n and_o wicked_a man_n in_o their_o wrath_n and_o they_o pursue_v after_o the_o proud_a man_n and_o the_o work_n prosper_v in_o their_o hand_n so_o they_o recover_v the_o law_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o king_n neither_o suffer_v they_o the_o sinner_n to_o triumph_v 1_o macc._n 2._o 42_o 47._o saying_n we_o will_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o king_n word_n to_o go_v from_o our_o religion_n either_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a verse_n 22._o so_o his_o son_n judas_n maccabeus_n be_v valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n and_o fight_v for_o the_o people_n and_o the_o sanctuary_n so_o prosperous_o deo_fw-la favente_fw-la against_o antiochus_n that_o he_o recover_v jerusalem_n and_o restore_v the_o pure_a worship_n of_o god_n from_o the_o gentile_n 1_o macc._n 3_o though_o other_o take_v part_n and_o be_v obedient_a to_o antiochus_n and_o they_o fall_v together_o with_o the_o persecutor_n for_o their_o so_o do_v by_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword._n when_o israel_n do_v evil_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n he_o sell_v they_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o jabin_n king_n of_o canaan_n who_o they_o serve_v twenty_o year_n a_o fair_a prescription_n for_o a_o kingdom_n worship_v strange_a god_n among_o who_o especial_o be_v the_o tribe_n of_o reuben_n ephraim_n benjamin_n dan_n asser_n etc._n etc._n who_o adhere_v to_o jabin_n nevertheless_o deborah_n who_o judge_v israel_n at_o that_o time_n levy_a force_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o other_o tribe_n of_o zabulon_n napthaly_n and_o issachar_n over_o who_o they_o make_v barack_n captain_n and_o go_v along_o with_o they_o be_v ten_o thousand_o man_n and_o discomfit_v the_o host_n of_o sisera_n captain_n of_o jabin_n and_o restore_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n to_o israel_n and_o then_o sing_v deborah_n etc._n etc._n judg._n 4._o 5._o happy_o some_o may_v say_v that_o these_o fact_n of_o deborah_n jael_n mattathias_n and_o libnah_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v draw_v into_o imitation_n and_o practice_n as_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o motion_n extraordinary_a like_o that_o of_o phineahs_n and_o the_o book_n itself_o but_o apochypha_n and_o not_o so_o authentic_a as_o scripture_n what_o then_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o not_o only_o the_o king_n but_o all_o israel_n and_o the_o part_n thereof_o viz._n the_o several_a city_n and_o their_o magistrate_n as_o in_o josh_n 24._o covenant_v before_o god_n and_o do_v swear_v to_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n according_a to_o his_o law_n which_o covenant_n be_v express_o in_o force_n to_o this_o day_n in_o all_o christian_a kingdom_n where_o king_n and_o people_n covenant_n each_o with_o other_o and_o tacit_o or_o interpretative_o also_o where_o king_n rule_v vi_n &_o armis_fw-la or_o by_o fraud_n or_o any_o other_o unjust_a way_n which_o be_v downright_a tyranny_n the_o people_n be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o oblige_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o god_n and_o then_o to_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o the_o king_n and_o though_o the_o king_n have_v the_o formality_n and_o executive_a part_n of_o power_n all_o writ_n execution_n proclamation_n etc._n etc._n issue_v in_o his_o name_n yet_o the_o people_n have_v the_o true_a dominion_n original_o sunt_fw-la enim_fw-la universa_fw-la in_o regis_fw-la imperio_fw-la non_fw-la in_o patrimonio_fw-la seneca_n lib._n 7._o de_fw-fr benef._n c._n 6_o 7._o omnia_fw-la rex_fw-la imperio_fw-la possidet_fw-la singuli_fw-la dominio_fw-la consult_v all_o history_n search_v all_o antiquity_n and_o you_o will_v find_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o all_o rebellion_n in_o all_o age_n and_o in_o all_o country_n to_o have_v rise_v original_o and_o most_o especial_o from_o the_o abuse_n of_o power_n first_o and_o not_o from_o the_o disobedience_n of_o subject_n to_o the_o lawful_a command_n of_o king_n if_o king_n command_v unlawful_a thing_n as_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n so_o to_o do_v so_o subject_n have_v no_o obligation_n to_o obey_v when_o covenant_n between_o prince_n and_o people_n be_v of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o can_v be_v break_v or_o violate_v by_o either_o king_n or_o people_n without_o do_v manifest_a injury_n to_o the_o other_o the_o injure_a party_n may_v seek_v his_o redress_n and_o relief_n though_o it_o be_v vim_o vi_fw-la repellendo_fw-la which_o be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o unjust_a force_n for_o if_o the_o force_n be_v unjust_a the_o defence_n must_v be_v lawful_a and_o contrariwise_o if_o the_o force_n be_v just_a the_o defence_n must_v be_v unlawful_a so_o that_o king_n and_o prince_n if_o transgressor_n be_v as_o true_o transgressor_n and_o invader_n
against_o their_o kingdom_n and_o their_o law_n as_o the_o people_n be_v against_o they_o and_o the_o law_n when_o they_o transgress_v do_v subject_n obey_v the_o command_n of_o their_o prince_n which_o they_o may_v lawful_o command_v and_o which_o they_o of_o right_a aught_o to_o obey_v without_o entrench_v on_o god_n command_n do_v they_o pay_v they_o tribute_n suit_n and_o service_n not_o contrary_a to_o god_n law_n as_o they_o ought_v so_o to_o obey_v cesar_n be_v just_a lawful_a and_o praiseworthy_a but_o to_o obey_v cesar_n exceed_v their_o just_a bound_n command_v without_o warrant_n of_o law_n affect_v and_o design_v a_o great_a empery_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o govern_v or_o if_o they_o invade_v or_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o god_n pervert_v the_o right_a worship_n of_o god_n who_o be_v above_o all_o king_n and_o government_n it_o be_v unjust_a and_o to_o assist_v cesar_n in_o such_o case_n be_v unlawful_a and_o they_o that_o do_v make_v themselves_o partaker_n of_o other_o man_n crime_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1300._o pope_n boniface_n viii_o challenge_v some_o regalia_z which_o belong_v unto_o philip_n the_o fair_a king_n of_o france_n whereupon_o philip_n sharp_o reprove_v the_o pope_n by_o his_o letter_n even_o in_o those_o day_n when_o the_o pope_n be_v account_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n according_a to_o communis_fw-la error_n juris_fw-la loco_fw-la erat_fw-la notwithstanding_o the_o sorban_n answer_v that_o both_o king_n and_o kingdom_n may_v safe_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n without_o any_o guilt_n of_o schism_n because_o not_o separation_n but_o the_o cause_n make_v schism_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o oppose_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o wicked_a man_n guilty_a of_o many_o crime_n sieur_n de_fw-fr mezerai_fw-fr annales_n francia_fw-la archivae_fw-la camerae_fw-la ratiociniorum_fw-la lutet_fw-la l._n barbar_n ph._n de_fw-fr senat._n if_o the_o cause_n be_v just_a the_o separation_n be_v from_o the_o high_a priest_n or_o bishop_n not_o from_o the_o church_n or_o more_o proper_o from_o boniface_n not_o from_o the_o high_a priest_n unless_o such_o distinction_n and_o discrimination_n be_v allow_v for_o true_a and_o authentic_a how_o can_v the_o soul_n of_o whole_a kingdom_n be_v distinguish_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n if_o king_n invade_v the_o right_n of_o god_n almighty_n and_o oppress_v his_o people_n who_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n with_o servitude_n deny_v their_o right_n privilege_n and_o liberty_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o and_o for_o which_o christ_n die_v we_o may_v much_o more_o use_v the_o same_o distinction_n and_o in_o opposition_n to_o such_o king_n or_o rather_o tyrant_n we_o may_v just_o say_v that_o not_o the_o king_n but_o the_o tyranny_n be_v oppose_v anno_fw-la 1408._o benedict_n xiii_o do_v grievious_o oppress_v the_o gallican_n church_n with_o tribute_n and_o exaction_n whence_o a_o convocation_n of_o the_o french_a clergy_n be_v call_v by_o charles_n vi_o they_o decree_v that_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n ought_v not_o to_o obey_v benedict_n as_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_a and_o unworthy_a of_o any_o honour_n which_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n allow_v and_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n approve_v by_o their_o arrest_n annales_n car._n 6._o monstreletus_n moreover_o they_o who_o benedict_n do_v excommunicate_a as_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n they_o judge_v they_o forthwith_o absolve_v of_o such_o excommunication_n and_o that_o thereby_o they_o be_v not_o exclude_v or_o deprive_v of_o any_o benefit_n or_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n the_o like_a we_o read_v to_o have_v be_v do_v as_o at_o other_o time_n in_o france_n so_o in_o other_o kingdom_n which_o evident_o show_v that_o if_o king_n and_o prince_n or_o state_n do_v tyrannize_v or_o extend_v their_o power_n beyond_o its_o just_a bound_n subject_n may_v without_o any_o just_a imputation_n of_o delinquency_n or_o rebellion_n withhold_v their_o tribute_n withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o obedience_n or_o resist_v their_o tyranny_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o resist_v a_o evil_a pope_n another_o thing_n to_o resist_v the_o church_n one_o thing_n to_o resist_v a_o king_n another_o thing_n to_o resist_v a_o kingdom_n or_o tyranny_n we_o read_v that_o edom_n revolt_v from_o under_o the_o hand_n of_o judah_n and_o make_v a_o king_n over_o themselves_o and_o libnah_n revolt_v from_o jehoram_n 2_o king_n 8._o 20_o 22._o yet_o after_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v restore_v we_o find_v libnah_n number_v among_o the_o subject_n of_o ezekiah_n chap._n 19_o 8._o if_o this_o distinction_n be_v of_o force_n when_o the_o pope_n who_o arrogant_o assume_v to_o himself_o superiority_n over_o king_n and_o prince_n invade_v their_o right_n or_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o not_o much_o more_o just_a if_o prince_n i_o may_v say_v vassal_n invade_v the_o right_n and_o regalia_z of_o the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o earth_n it_o stand_v therefore_o sure_a that_o prince_n command_v unlawful_a thing_n or_o forbid_v holy_a thing_n or_o introduce_v a_o false_a or_o idolatrous_a worship_n the_o people_n or_o rather_o parliament_n diet_n senate_n the_o several_a officer_n or_o inferior_a magistrate_n have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o government_n and_o entrust_v with_o the_o common_a concern_v of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o the_o people_n both_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o hinder_v or_o resist_v unlawful_a command_n all_o or_o at_o least_o the_o govern_v magistrate_n of_o kingdom_n and_o city_n as_o first_o impower_v by_o god_n and_o then_o constitute_v by_o prince_n by_o authority_n derive_v from_o the_o people_n aught_o to_o promote_v in_o their_o several_a station_n and_o province_n first_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o of_o holy_a church_n and_o then_o the_o good_a and_o welfare_n of_o kingdom_n city_n and_o free_a state_n and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o it_o be_v in_o they_o crimen_fw-la laesae_fw-la magistatis_fw-la and_o they_o become_v participes_fw-la criminis_fw-la by_o such_o their_o sinful_a connivance_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o bishop_n bilson_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n as_o learned_a and_o as_o honest_a a_o bishop_n and_o as_o sound_v a_o divine_a as_o ever_o sit_v on_o that_o see_v and_o who_o have_v write_v a_o most_o learned_a treatise_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o christian_a subjection_n and_o unchristian_a rebellion_n in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o roman_n do_v not_o love_v the_o name_n of_o king_n and_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o venice_n milan_n florence_n and_o genoa_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n many_o state_n have_v governor_n for_o life_n and_o for_o year_n and_o yet_o a_o sovereignty_n still_o remain_v in_o the_o people_n or_o senate_n or_o in_o the_o prelate_n and_o noble_n that_o elect_v or_o assist_v the_o magistrate_n who_o have_v his_o jurisdiction_n allot_v and_o prefix_v unto_o he_o and_o may_v be_v resist_v and_o recall_v from_o any_o tyrannous_a excess_n by_o the_o general_a and_o public_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a state._n in_o germany_n the_o emperor_n himself_o have_v his_o bound_n appoint_v he_o which_o he_o may_v not_o pass_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o the_o prince_n duke_n and_o city_n that_o be_v under_o he_o have_v power_n to_o use_v and_o govern_v the_o sword_n as_o god_n minister_n in_o their_o own_o charge_n and_o though_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o empire_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o such_o order_n as_o shall_v be_v decree_v in_o the_o convent_n of_o all_o their_o state_n and_o according_a to_o that_o direction_n be_v to_o furnish_v the_o emperor_n with_o man_n and_o money_n for_o his_o necessary_a war_n and_o defence_n yet_o if_o he_o touch_v their_o policy_n infringe_v their_o liberty_n or_o violate_v the_o specialty_n which_o he_o by_o oath_n and_o order_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v bind_v to_o keep_v they_o may_v lawful_o resist_v he_o and_o by_o force_n reduce_v he_o to_o the_o ancient_a government_n or_o else_o repel_v he_o as_o a_o tyrant_n and_o set_v another_o in_o his_o place_n by_o the_o right_n and_o freedom_n of_o their_o country_n bilson_n subjection_n p._n 513._o zuinglius_fw-la say_v that_o if_o the_o empire_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o sovereign_n shall_v oppress_v the_o truth_n and_o they_o negligent_o suffer_v the_o same_o they_o shall_v be_v charge_v with_o contempt_n no_o less_o than_o the_o oppressor_n themselves_o zuingl_n lib._n 4._o epist_n zuing._n &_o occol_n f._n 186._o and_o elsewhere_o when_o king_n rule_v unfaithful_o and_o otherwise_o than_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v they_o may_v with_o god_n be_v depose_v as_o when_o they_o punish_v not_o wicked_a person_n but_o especial_o when_o they_o advance_v the_o ungodly_a and_o idle_a priest_n such_o may_v be_v deprive_v of_o their_o dignity_n as_o saul_n
god_n have_v promise_v to_o make_v of_o he_o a_o great_a nation_n though_o he_o shall_v destroy_v they_o yet_o he_o beseech_v god_n so_o earnest_o that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o forgive_v their_o sin_n that_o he_o will_v blot_v he_o out_o of_o the_o be●k_n of_o life_n if_o magistrate_n now_o adays_o have_v the_o like_a zeal_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o their_o people_n how_o happy_a will_v king_n how_o happy_a will_v the_o people_n be_v when_o the_o israelite_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o ill_a government_n of_o samuel_n son_n desire_v a_o king_n like_o all_o the_o nation_n god_n who_o by_o such_o desire_v they_o have_v reject_v yet_o tell_v they_o the_o manner_n and_o custom_n of_o those_o king_n heathen_n you_o may_v be_v sure_a who_o know_v not_o god_n nor_o his_o righteous_a judgement_n 2_o sam._n 8._o 11_o 12_o 13._o be_v very_o arbitrary_a govern_n by_o a_o army_n that_o they_o may_v go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o and_o fight_v their_o battle_n and_o judge_v they_o arbitrary_o yet_o so_o peremptory_a be_v they_o that_o they_o reject_v the_o just_a and_o a_o righteous_a and_o easy_a government_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v over_o they_o nay_o but_o we_o will_v have_v a_o king_n over_o we_o as_o other_o nation_n and_o they_o have_v one_o that_o use_v they_o according_o therefore_o solomon_n may_v well_o say_v as_o in_o ecclesiastes_n i_o counsel_v thou_o to_o keep_v the_o king_n commandment_n for_o he_o do_v whatever_o it_o please_v he_o where_o the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n be_v there_o be_v power_n and_o who_o may_v say_v unto_o he_o what_o do_v thou_o it_o be_v then_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o king_n of_o nation_n heathen_n so_o to_o govern_v &_o volenti_fw-la non_fw-la fit_a injuria_fw-la which_o manner_n remain_v even_o to_o this_o day_n among_o the_o eastern_a prince_n and_o let_v they_o that_o delight_n to_o be_v so_o govern_v have_v their_o belly_n full_a of_o it_o but_o god_n have_v provide_v better_a law_n judgement_n and_o statute_n for_o his_o people_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n redeem_a by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n jesus_n christ_n bless_v for_o ever_o where_o the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n be_v there_o be_v power_n and_o who_o may_v say_v unto_o he_o what_o do_v thou_o this_o he_o wise_o advise_v to_o those_o who_o will_v be_v so_o govern_v and_o to_o single_a person_n but_o not_o to_o whole_a kingdom_n or_o their_o representative_n the_o practice_n be_v otherwise_o even_o by_o god_n own_o command_n elisah_n tell_v ahab_n that_o he_o and_o his_o father_n house_n have_v trouble_v israel_n 1_o king_n 17._o 18._o samuel_n tell_v saul_n thou_o have_v do_v foolish_o 1_o sam._n 13._o 3._o so_o nathan_n tell_v david_n thou_o be_v the_o man._n 2_o sam._n 12._o 7._o obj._n but_o these_o man_n be_v extraordinary_o commissionated_a sol._n be_v it_o so_o so_o be_v all_o they_o commissionated_a that_o follow_v their_o example_n though_o not_o immediate_o from_o god_n himself_o yet_o tacit_o by_o his_o general_n command_v universal_o and_o eternal_o true_a viz._n thou_o shall_v not_o hate_v thy_o brother_n in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o shall_v in_o any_o wise_a rebuke_n thy_o neighbour_n and_o not_o suffer_v sin_n upon_o he_o levit._n 19_o 17._o be_v it_o fit_a to_o say_v to_o a_o king_n thou_o be_v wicked_a and_o to_o prince_n you_o be_v ungodly_a say_v job_n 34._o 13._o reprove_v not_o a_o scorner_n lest_o he_o hate_v thou_o rebuke_v a_o wise_a man_n and_o he_o will_v love_v thou_o prov._n 9_o 8._o these_o be_v prudential_a document_n how_o to_o manage_v rebuke_n but_o exempt_v not_o king_n and_o prince_n from_o be_v rebuke_v he_o that_o rebuke_v the_o wicked_a get_v himself_o a_o blot_n ver_fw-la 7._o in_o such_o case_n the_o apostle_n give_v good_a advice_n give_v not_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a unto_o dog_n neither_o cast_a pearl_n before_o swine_n lest_o they_o trample_v they_o under_o their_o foot_n indeed_o if_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v such_o bruit_n than_o tophet_n be_v prepare_v for_o they_o and_o shall_v be_v their_o doom_n isa_n 30._o 33._o and_o man_n will_v be_v wise_a than_o to_o run_v their_o head_n against_o brick_n wall_n but_o truth_n seasonable_o speak_v can_v do_v no_o man_n no_o wrong_n and_o ought_v gracious_o to_o be_v receive_v solomon_n intimation_n be_v good_a where_o the_o word_n of_o a_o king_n be_v there_o be_v power_n and_o who_o may_v say_v unto_o he_o what_o do_v thou_o eccl._n 8._o 4._o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o folly_n in_o any_o man_n to_o contend_v with_o any_o man_n king_n or_o not_o king_n that_o be_v mighty_a than_o he_o eccl._n 6._o 10._o but_o all_o these_o apothegm_n relate_v chief_o to_o private_a person_n not_o to_o whole_a state_n and_o kingdom_n who_o have_v just_a power_n to_o defend_v their_o just_a right_n against_o prince_n that_o usurp_v more_o power_n to_o themselves_o than_o ever_o god_n and_o the_o people_n give_v they_o and_o to_o urge_v samuel_n a_o prophet_n in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n be_v with_o the_o witch_n at_o endor_n to_o raise_v a_o false_a and_o counterfeit_n prophet_n 1_o sam._n 28._o 11_o 12._o can_v it_o ever_o be_v imagine_v that_o god_n give_v countenance_n or_o encouragement_n to_o king_n to_o work_v wickedness_n to_o oppress_v or_o violate_v all_o law_n and_o covenant_n and_o yet_o be_v blameless_a and_o unaccountable_a here_o on_o earth_n he_o have_v command_v no_o man_n to_o do_v wicked_o neither_o have_v he_o give_v any_o man_n licence_n to_o sin_n eccl._n 15._o 20._o god_n never_o break_v his_o own_o covenant_n but_o keep_v they_o for_o ever_o and_o always_o punish_v they_o that_o do_v and_o shall_v they_o who_o call_v themselves_o his_o vicegerent_n like_o wild_a boar_n of_o the_o forest_n or_o like_a bear_n rob_v of_o their_o whelp_n break_v through_o all_o law_n and_o bound_n and_o yet_o be_v blameless_a and_o unaccountable_a to_o they_o who_o make_v they_o king_n design_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o law_n and_o not_o to_o destroy_v they_o or_o like_o fox_n of_o the_o wilderness_n by_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n by_o sham_v law_n or_o pervert_v righteous_a judgement_n or_o by_o pack_v a_o alteration_n in_o government_n and_o slide_v thereinto_o insensible_o by_o trick_n and_o quirk_n of_o law_n or_o to_o draw_v argument_n from_o the_o manner_n and_o custom_n of_o king_n heathen_a for_o jus_fw-la regium_fw-la to_o be_v the_o right_n of_o king_n christian_n to_o do_v as_o they_o list_v quod_fw-la libet_fw-la licet_fw-la uncontrolable_o be_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v to_o do_v as_o the_o rebellious_a and_o ungrateful_a israclite_n do_v vilify_v set_v at_o naught_o and_o reject_v the_o government_n which_o god_n establish_v by_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n where_o such_o doctrine_n be_v embrace_v as_o true_a what_o better_a condition_n be_v christian_n under_o than_o heathen_n nay_o than_o brute_n do_v god_n think_v you_o create_v the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n after_o his_o own_o image_n a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n and_o crown_v they_o with_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o give_v they_o dominion_n over_o the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n and_o put_v all_o thing_n under_o their_o foot_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o subject_v they_o to_o axe_n and_o harrow_n to_o thorn_n and_o briar_n to_o the_o lust_n and_o pleasure_n of_o a_o few_o king_n choose_v by_o themselves_o from_o among_o themselves_o for_o the_o sake_n only_o of_o order_n peace_n and_o welfare_n of_o they_o all_o it_o be_v true_a that_o see_v the_o israelite_n notwithstanding_o god_n cautionate_v of_o they_o be_v so_o foolhardy_a as_o to_o reject_v god_n in_o reject_v his_o government_n yet_o he_o do_v gratify_v they_o but_o in_o his_o displeasure_n in_o what_o they_o desire_v and_o they_o feel_v the_o sad_a effect_n thereof_o but_o from_o deut._n 17._o 14_o 16._o it_o may_v be_v gather_v and_o conclude_v that_o the_o people_n have_v a_o just_a right_n and_o title_n to_o choose_v whether_o the_o commonwealth_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o one_o or_o more_o and_o may_v change_v it_o from_o one_o kind_n of_o government_n to_o another_o as_o shall_v best_o please_v themselves_o but_o in_o all_o government_n god_n be_v always_o to_o be_v precedent_n i._n e._n his_o law_n be_v always_o to_o be_v have_v in_o remembrance_n and_o observe_v and_o they_o who_o govern_v otherwise_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v as_o king_n but_o as_o enemy_n not_o as_o god_n vicegerent_n but_o as_o the_o devil_n and_o may_v be_v proceed_v against_o according_o o_o but_o you_o shall_v be_v his_o servant_n 1_o sam._n 8._o 17._o very_o well_o and_o well_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v so_o and_o slave_n to_o boot_v as_o they_o
and_o swear_v and_o be_v accountable_a to_o the_o same_o law_n and_o to_o they_o from_o who_o they_o derive_v their_o authority_n and_o power_n for_o who_o good_a and_o benefit_n and_o by_o who_o they_o be_v first_o and_o primary_o enact_v and_o constitute_v magistrate_n be_v create_v and_o appoint_v by_o men._n hence_o peter_n call_v both_o king_n and_o other_o magistrate_n a_o human_a creation_n or_o human_a ordinance_n so_o h●sea_n 8._o 4._o they_o have_v set_v king_n up_o but_o not_o by_o i_o the_o ●_o have_v make_v prince_n but_o i_o know_v it_o not_o in_o the_o hebrew_n commonwealth_n and_o kingdom_n only_o where_o they_o have_v several_a way_n of_o resort_v unto_o and_o consult_v god_n almighty_a they_o may_v and_o do_v refer_v the_o nomination_n of_o their_o king_n unto_o he_o but_o concern_v other_o nation_n we_o have_v receive_v no_o such_o like_a custom_n or_o mandate_n the_o precept_n that_o god_n himself_o give_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o choice_n of_o their_o king_n do_v more_o especial_o respect_v the_o qualification_n of_o kingship_n than_o the_o nomination_n of_o the_o person_n viz._n when_o thou_o be_v come_v into_o the_o land_n which_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n give_v thou_o and_o shall_v possess_v it_o and_o shall_v dwell_v therein_o and_o shall_v say_v 283._o i_o will_v set_v a_o king_n over_o i_o like_a as_o all_o the_o nation_n round_o about_o i_o thou_o shall_v in_o any_o wise_a set_v he_o king_n over_o thou_o which_o be_v a_o manifest_a allowance_n and_o commission_n to_o appoint_v their_o own_o king_n who_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v choose_v not_o personal_o not_o by_o his_o nomination_n but_o according_a to_o such_o and_o such_o qualification_n viz._n one_o from_o among_o thy_o brethren_n shall_v thou_o set_v king_n over_o thou_o thou_o may_v not_o set_v a_o stranger_n over_o thou_o which_o be_v not_o thy_o brother_n but_o he_o shall_v not_o multiply_v horse_n neither_o shall_v he_o multiply_v wife_n to_o himself_o that_o his_o heart_n turn_v not_o away_o neither_o shall_v he_o great_o multiply_v to_o himself_o silver_n and_o gold._n and_o it_o shall_v be_v when_o he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o kingdom_n that_o he_o shall_v write_v he_o a_o copy_n of_o this_o law_n in_o a_o book_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o he_o and_o he_o shall_v read_v therein_o all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n that_o he_o may_v learn_v to_o fear_v the_o lord_n his_o god_n to_o keep_v all_o the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n and_o these_o statute_n to_o do_v they_o that_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o lift_v up_o above_o his_o brethren_n and_o that_o he_o turn_v not_o aside_o from_o that_o commandment_n to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v prolong_v his_o day_n in_o his_o kingdom_n he_o and_o his_o child_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o israel_n deut._n 17._o from_o hence_o it_o be_v evident_a under_o what_o law_n and_o precept_n king_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o govern_v and_o if_o not_o so_o qualify_v and_o so_o choose_v they_o can_v have_v no_o just_a right_o to_o govern_v vid._n dr._n sherrock_n de_fw-fr officiis_n c._n 4._o n_o o._n 8._o p._n 289._o sometime_o the_o very_a form_n of_o government_n may_v be_v vicious_a and_o faulty_a sometime_o they_o that_o obtain_v the_o power_n may_v be_v so_o which_o may_v proceed_v from_o man_n and_o from_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o devil_n take_v jesus_n up_o into_o a_o high_a mountain_n show_v unto_o he_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o moment_n of_o time_n and_o the_o devil_n say_v unto_o he_o all_z this_o power_n will_v i_o give_v thou_o and_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o for_o that_o be_v deliver_v unto_o i_o and_o to_o whosoever_o i_o will_v i_o give_v it_o hence_o be_v he_o call_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n john_n 12._o 30._o &_o 14._o 31._o rev._n 13._o 2._o the_o dragon_n give_v unto_o the_o beast_n power_n and_o his_o throne_n and_o great_a authority_n yea_o the_o god_n of_o the_o world_n 2_o cor._n 4._o 4._o wherefore_o when_o it_o be_v write_v that_o there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n it_o be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o all_o power_n whatsoever_o but_o of_o all_o lawful_a power_n such_o as_o he_o there_o describe_v and_o of_o the_o power_n themselves_o not_o always_o of_o the_o person_n that_o have_v the_o power_n so_o st._n chrysostom_n the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n who_o by_o his_o essential_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n and_o by_o the_o express_a warrant_n of_o his_o ordinance_n never_o ordain_v any_o but_o what_o be_v good_a and_o behooful_a for_o the_o govern_v therefore_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n will_v be_v understand_v of_o lawful_a power_n god_n may_v and_o do_v permit_v unlawful_a power_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o wicked_a doer_n even_o by_o wicked_a man_n which_o be_v god_n sword_n but_o never_o ordain_v such_o but_o as_o his_o rod_n and_o scourge_v wickedness_n and_o vice_n and_o sin_n be_v thing_n inordinate_a it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o god_n shall_v ordain_v they_o and_o yet_o be_v sinful_a and_o vicious_a still_o he_o that_o resist_v the_o power_n viz._n lawful_a power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o precept_n equal_o bind_v and_o oblige_v king_n as_o well_o as_o subject_n that_o resist_v or_o transgress_v or_o obstruct_v the_o law_n or_o endeavour_v to_o shame_n they_o either_o by_o force_n or_o coin_v evasion_n i_o appeal_v to_o heaven_n if_o they_o that_o resist_v power_n not_o lawful_a or_o abuser_n or_o overturner_n of_o lawful_a power_n do_v resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n or_o not_o i_o do_v think_v that_o no_o man_n in_o his_o right_a sense_n will_v say_v so_o the_o apostle_n yet_o make_v it_o more_o plain_a that_o he_o treat_v of_o lawful_a power_n when_o he_o say_v that_o ruler_n be_v not_o a_o terror_n to_o good_a work_n but_o to_o the_o evil_n and_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o for_o good_a for_o he_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a a_o revenger_n to_o execute_v wrath_n on_o they_o that_o do_v evil_a who_o unless_o heathen_n or_o person_n of_o profligate_v conscience_n will_v refuse_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o such_o power_n not_o only_o out_o of_o fear_n of_o punishment_n but_o for_o conscience_n sake_n for_o without_o civil_a government_n not_o possible_a to_o live_v in_o peace_n and_o happiness_n but_o what_o power_n what_o magistrate_n soever_o ordain_v or_o act_n contrary_a can_v never_o proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v ordain_v i._n e._n allow_v and_o approve_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v no_o precept_n no_o command_n to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o such_o neither_o be_v it_o any_o precept_n or_o command_n to_o forbid_v we_o prudent_o to_o resist_v defend_v and_o right_v ourselves_o for_o in_o such_o case_n we_o do_v not_o resist_v the_o power_n but_o human_a error_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n nor_o the_o magistrate_n that_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n who_o ought_v to_o be_v such_o as_o the_o apostle_n decipher_v but_o either_o usurper_n or_o tyrant_n or_o betrayer_n of_o the_o trust_v repose_v in_o they_o who_o yet_o notwithstanding_o if_o they_o must_v be_v term_v magistrate_n in_o that_o only_o they_o have_v power_n to_o vex_v revenge_n and_o ravage_v over_o god_n people_n by_o the_o very_a selfsame_a logic_n the_o devil_n be_v our_o magistrate_n of_o one_o thing_n only_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o true_a definition_n if_o therefore_o paul_n do_v here_o right_o define_v magistracy_n and_o magistrate_n as_o he_o do_v most_o accurate_o then_o certain_o by_o the_o same_o word_n he_o can_v define_v tyranny_n oppression_n malegovernment_n thing_n diametrical_o opposité_n and_o contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o then_o certain_o to_o such_o magistrate_n only_o as_o the_o apostle_n here_o describe_v do_v we_o owe_v subjection_n tribute_n honour_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o to_o their_o contrary_n reason_n assign_v be_v for_o this_o cause_n pay_v you_o tribute_n also_o for_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n attend_v continual_o on_o this_o very_a thing_n render_v therefore_o etc._n etc._n the_o labourer_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o hire_n and_o they_o that_o hire_n ought_v to_o have_v their_o service_n and_o work_v well_o do_v so_o that_o if_o magistrate_n fail_v of_o their_o duty_n subject_n may_v slacken_v their_o tribute_n which_o be_v give_v they_o only_o as_o a_o recompense_n of_o their_o watchfulness_n pain_n and_o care_n in_o well_o govern_v therefore_o simple_a and_o absolute_a subjection_n be_v not_o here_o require_v but_o subjection_n with_o reason_n subjoin_v which_o reason_n be_v the_o rule_n and_o square_n of_o our_o subjection_n we_o be_v often_o tell_v by_o our_o priest_n that_o prayer_n and_o tear_n be_v the_o weapon_n
if_o they_o will_v for_o that_o law_n which_o overthrow_v all_o law_n as_o such_o a_o law_n will_v do_v can_v be_v no_o law._n can_v it_o reasonable_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o power_n or_o rather_o the_o impotency_n of_o one_o man_n be_v he_o king_n or_o emperor_n can_v have_v more_o of_o divine_a right_n in_o he_o to_o a_o common_a evil_n than_o the_o power_n of_o whole_a kingdom_n have_v of_o the_o same_o divine_a right_n in_o they_o to_o a_o common_a good_a far_o be_v it_o from_o all_o civil_a society_n to_o have_v such_o brutal_a thought_n for_o whilst_o king_n be_v exalt_v above_o all_o law_n as_o pulpiteer_n will_v have_v they_o they_o thereby_o reduce_v rational_a man_n to_o the_o condition_n of_o brute_n to_o be_v bring_v under_o axe_n and_o harrow_n without_o hope_n of_o redress_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o nature_n law_n make_v no_o king_n nor_o give_v any_o right_n of_o succession_n or_o inheritance_n when_o make_v nor_o any_o right_a to_o govern_v arbitrary_o nor_o yet_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n which_o bind_v reasonable_a creature_n in_o this_o world_n and_o with_o which_o by_o reason_n they_o may_v plain_o perceive_v themselves_o bind_v to_o submit_v to_o such_o law_n and_o ordinance_n as_o public_a reason_n do_v constitute_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a and_o to_o prefer_v the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a before_o any_o private_a good_a whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o king_n from_o hence_o can_v have_v any_o right_n to_o wrong_n or_o oppress_v any_o people_n be_v themselves_o inferior_a to_o the_o whole_a now_o see_v king_n have_v no_o right_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o nature_n or_o of_o reason_n to_o injure_v or_o oppress_v any_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o the_o people_n be_v by_o nature_n law_n supreme_a and_o that_o by_o the_o same_o right_n by_o which_o man_n first_o associate_v and_o take_v counsel_n together_o how_o to_o live_v in_o peace_n plenty_n liberty_n and_o to_o defend_v themselves_o from_o oppression_n before_o ever_o king_n be_v or_o can_v be_v set_v over_o they_o by_o which_o right_n also_o for_o common_a security_n peace_n liberty_n justice_n etc._n etc._n they_o constitute_v and_o prefer_v one_o or_o more_o from_o among_o themselves_o to_o preside_v over_o they_o for_o his_o or_o their_o singular_a prudence_n and_o wisdom_n for_o management_n above_o other_o by_o the_o same_o right_n they_o may_v censure_v and_o renounce_v the_o same_o man_n for_o negligence_n wickedness_n weakness_n of_o part_n or_o for_o any_o malegovernment_n when_o a_o people_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o reason_n do_v contrive_v and_o establish_v a_o governor_n over_o themselves_o it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o governor_n be_v he_o monarch_n or_o other_o and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o right_n in_o he_o to_o injure_v or_o oppress_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o reason_n most_o supreme_a there_o be_v no_o king_n nor_o any_o right_n of_o succession_n by_o any_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o reason_n both_o both_o may_v be_v establish_v by_o which_o very_a law_n the_o most_o prudent_a and_o most_o deserve_a have_v the_o fair_a pretence_n the_o discern_a and_o discriminate_v of_o which_o lie_v whole_o in_o the_o breast_n and_o power_n of_o the_o people_n show_v i_o one_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o any_o rule_n of_o natural_a justice_n whereby_o the_o inferiors_n guilty_a of_o punishable_a crime_n ought_v to_o be_v punish_v and_o the_o like_a guilty_a potentate_n ought_v to_o go_v scotfree_a the_o law_n of_o god_n declare_v the_o contrary_a the_o mighty_a shall_v be_v mighty_o punish_v law_n be_v not_o cobweb_n to_o catch_v little_a fly_n only_o and_o let_v bee_n wasp_n and_o hornet_n escape_v through_o impunè_fw-la king_n by_o nature_n be_v no_o more_o sacred_a than_o their_o subject_n they_o be_v all_o god_n anoint_a and_o if_o transgressor_n be_v as_o punishable_a as_o they_o by_o the_o selfsame_a law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n no_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n authorize_v any_o one_o so_o to_o govern_v as_o that_o all_o the_o govern_v must_v be_v subject_a to_o punishment_n but_o the_o governor_n exempt_a and_o free_a from_o censure_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o papist_n have_v a_o axiom_n as_o before_o viz._n prima_fw-la sedes_fw-la à_fw-la nemine_fw-la judicabitur_fw-la a_o position_n as_o false_a as_o hell._n where_o such_o law_n be_v in_o force_n the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n be_v infringe_v and_o violate_v if_o king_n break_v their_o oath_n and_o their_o trust_n solemn_o make_v to_o the_o people_n and_o become_v tyrant_n the_o people_n be_v by_o his_o perjury_n and_o breach_n of_o trust_n without_o the_o help_n of_o popish_a dispensation_n discharge_v of_o their_o oath_n of_o fealty_n and_o allegiance_n as_o also_o by_o common_a justice_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n quem_fw-la populus_fw-la non_fw-la vult_fw-la statim_fw-la be_v non_fw-la rex_fw-la sed_fw-la tyrannus_fw-la est_fw-la arist_n pol._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n between_o which_o there_o be_v a_o most_o divine_a harmony_n consider_v well_o what_o law_n god_n have_v appoint_v for_o king_n and_o how_o the_o people_n of_o god_n both_o jew_n and_o christian_n have_v behave_v themselves_o towards_o king_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o must_v appear_v that_o nothing_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n than_o to_o punish_v and_o remove_v tyrant_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n seat_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n and_o respect_v the_o good_a of_o all_o man_n indifferent_o that_o the_o strong_a may_v not_o oppress_v the_o weak_a nor_o the_o rich_a the_o poor_a which_o law_n can_v be_v make_v bind_v but_o by_o common_a consent_n nor_o any_o make_a governor_n to_o see_v the_o just_a and_o equal_a execution_n of_o they_o but_o by_o like_a consent_n and_o therefore_o both_o king_n and_o republic_n be_v so_o estate_v by_o the_o people_n for_o their_o own_o good_a it_o necessary_o and_o unavoidable_o follow_v that_o the_o people_n must_v be_v the_o more_o worthy_a and_o superior_a and_o consequent_o there_o can_v be_v no_o right_n in_o any_o monarch_n or_o republic_n to_o afflict_v or_o oppress_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n be_v supreme_a by_o which_o right_o before_o any_o king_n be_v erect_v the_o people_n first_o associate_v and_o consult_v for_o their_o own_o mutual_a defence_n liberty_n peace_n and_o happy_a live_n together_o by_o which_o right_o also_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o do_v prefer_v some_o one_o or_o other_o from_o among_o themselves_o who_o they_o do_v esteem_v most_o worthy_a to_o preside_v and_o by_o the_o same_o right_n they_o do_v censure_v or_o remove_v upon_o breach_n of_o trust_n nature_n not_o particular_o respect_v the_o good_a of_o one_o or_o of_o a_o few_o but_o of_o all_o in_o general_n for_o this_o we_o have_v a_o more_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n even_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n himself_o in_o caiphas_n the_o high_a priest_n his_o prophecy_n that_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o one_o man_n shall_v die_v for_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o nation_n perish_v not_o john_n 11._o 49_o 50._o which_o word_n though_o in_o their_o proper_a signification_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o crucify_a of_o christ_n yet_o they_o be_v ground_v on_o this_o natural_a and_o fundamental_a maxim_n that_o the_o good_a happiness_n and_o interest_n of_o a_o nation_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o interest_n welfare_n will_n or_o pleasure_n of_o any_o man_n king_n or_o prince_n no_o man_n can_v by_o any_o law_n of_o nature_n lie_v any_o claim_n to_o kingship_n or_o succession_n it_o must_v come_v ab_fw-la alio_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o that_o can_v now_o adays_o be_v from_o no_o other_o but_o by_o the_o suffrage_n and_o free_a consent_n of_o the_o govern_v they_o that_o otherwise_o sit_v on_o throne_n be_v it_o by_o conquest_n faction_n craft_n or_o any_o other_o mean_n or_o artifices_fw-la be_v but_o usurper_n at_o the_o best_a natural_a and_o moral_a right_n may_v seem_v to_o favour_v the_o most_o prudent_a and_o just_a person_n to_o sit_v at_o the_o helm_n of_o a_o state_n but_o confer_v no_o absolute_a nor_o indefeasible_a right_n to_o a_o throne_n or_o succession_n such_o person_n best_o qualify_v have_v the_o fair_a pretence_n to_o government_n but_o for_o the_o weak_a and_o simple_a the_o wicked_a and_o unjust_a to_o domineer_v over_o the_o righteous_a and_o just_a and_o to_o rule_v with_o rigour_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o to_o labour_v and_o endeavour_v to_o break_v off_o
be_v both_o make_v censor_n from_o the_o plebeian_n which_o law_n philo_n the_o dictator_n be_v say_v to_o have_v make_v all_o the_o patrician_n magistrate_n even_o those_o also_o of_o the_o pontisicates_n and_o priest_n be_v make_v the_o plebeian_n be_v first_o consult_v in_o sum_n so_o great_a be_v the_o honour_n of_o tribunitian_a power_n that_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n give_v it_o to_o octavius_n augustus_n and_o then_o to_o the_o caesar_n as_o a_o special_a remark_n of_o favour_n yet_o it_o must_v not_o be_v omit_v that_o though_o the_o consul_n and_o praetor_n may_v be_v call_v to_o account_v by_o the_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n yet_o caesar_n by_o the_o right_n of_o his_o sacred_a power_n be_v free_a from_o all_o power_n of_o the_o magistrate_n but_o notwithstanding_o if_o he_o do_v abuse_v the_o power_n so_o confer_v upon_o he_o or_o shall_v diminish_v or_o infringe_v the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n or_o if_o he_o do_v intercede_v or_o forbid_v or_o compel_v when_o or_o where_o he_o ought_v not_o or_o if_o he_o do_v enterprise_n or_o endeavour_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o good_a of_o the_o people_n he_o may_v be_v summon_v by_o the_o consul_n or_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n and_o if_o find_v guilty_a he_o may_v by_o their_o suffrage_n be_v degrade_v and_o punish_v and_o then_o he_o be_v no_o more_o account_v sacred_a but_o profane_a when_o nine_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n with_o sp._n crassus_n lest_o magistrate_n more_o majorum_fw-la shall_v be_v substitute_v do_v conspire_v and_o confederate_n against_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n pub._n mutius_n a_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n do_v not_o only_o put_v they_o out_o of_o their_o tribuneship_n but_o by_o right_a and_o law_n do_v punish_v they_o and_o tiberius_n gracchus_n the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o tribune_n approve_v deprive_v octavius_n his_o colleague_n in_o the_o tribuneship_n of_o his_o power_n for_o that_o contrary_a to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o public_a he_o have_v intercede_v or_o oppose_v himself_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n by_o which_o the_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n be_v make_v sacred_a be_v tribunum_fw-la invitum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la unum_fw-la è_fw-la multis_fw-la nemo_fw-la cogito_fw-la agere_fw-la neque_fw-la verberato_fw-la neque_fw-la alteri_fw-la ut_fw-la verberet_fw-la imperato_fw-la neque_fw-la occidito_fw-la neque_fw-la occidi_fw-la jubeto_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la autem_fw-la prohibitorum_fw-la horum_fw-la quid_fw-la fecerit_fw-la impius_fw-la execrabilisque_n esto_fw-la bonaque_fw-la ejus_fw-la publicato_fw-la ad_fw-la sacra_fw-la cereris_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la aliquem_fw-la haec_fw-la agentium_fw-la occiderit_fw-la caedis_fw-la expiatus_fw-la esto_fw-la 3._o 66._o lycurgus_n a_o spartan_a king_n and_o of_o ancient_a kingly_a race_n famous_a and_o celebrate_v for_o good_a government_n and_o for_o make_v wise_a and_o good_a law_n design_v to_o establish_v kingly_a power_n upon_o a_o more_o sure_a foundation_n he_o think_v no_o way_n so_o good_a and_o so_o proper_a as_o plato_n have_v observe_v as_o to_o constitute_v a_o senate_n or_o ephori_fw-la i._n e._n the_o power_n of_o the_o people_n great_a than_o that_o of_o king_n so_o think_v theseus_n euripideus_n king_n of_o athens_n who_o have_v vindicate_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n of_o athens_n to_o his_o great_a glory_n do_v estate_n the_o popular_a power_n above_o the_o kingly_a yet_o nevertheless_o leave_v his_o kingdom_n to_o his_o posterity_n all_o wise_a and_o civilise_a people_n have_v ever_o esteem_v the_o law_n to_o be_v king_n which_o it_o can_v be_v except_o it_o have_v power_n over_o king_n ann._n dom._n 429_o in_o the_o time_n of_o theodosius_n second_o and_o valentinian_n 3d_o florentio_n dianysio_n and_o coss_n upon_o complaint_n make_v concern_v appeal_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o save_v the_o reverence_n of_o our_o majesty_n we_o do_v not_o disdain_v to_o have_v equal_a law_n or_o justice_n with_o private_a person_n l._n ult_n de_fw-fr appell_n &_o consult_v cod._n th._n abest_fw-la a._n cod._n just_o and_o suitable_a to_o this_o be_v the_o answer_n give_v to_o the_o messenger_n of_o africa_n by_o a_o law_n direct_v to_o volusianus_n the_o praefect_n viz._n it_o be_v a_o resolution_n worthy_a the_o majesty_n of_o a_o prince_n to_o own_v himself_o bind_v up_o by_o the_o law_n so_o much_o do_v his_o authority_n depend_v upon_o that_o of_o the_o law_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n great_a than_o empire_n to_o submit_v the_o prince_n power_n unto_o law_n and_o by_o the_o oracle_n of_o this_o present_a edict_n so_o it_o conclude_v that_o which_o we_o do_v not_o permit_v to_o be_v lawful_a to_o ourselves_o we_o declare_v to_o other_o l._n 4._o the_o leg_n cod._n just_o lib._n 1._o tit_n 14._o so_o just_a and_o temperate_a be_v the_o government_n of_o the_o roman_n under_o theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n the_o three_o kingly_a power_n so_o temper_v may_v very_o well_o consist_v with_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n it_o be_v so_o temper_v and_o use_v with_o the_o spartan_n theban_n athenian_n sicilian_n and_o other_o when_o all_o power_n be_v give_v by_o the_o people_n to_o king_n whereby_o they_o obtain_v that_o title_n yet_o it_o be_v give_v in_o trust_n for_o they_o for_o the_o safeguard_n and_o welfare_n and_o not_o for_o the_o destruction_n or_o prejudice_n of_o the_o people_n to_o have_v the_o benefit_n and_o freedom_n of_o their_o law_n and_o not_o be_v slave_n o_o but_o after_o this_o rate_n king_n reign_v not_o by_o god_n but_o by_o the_o people_n appointment_n very_o true_a for_o no_o king_n now_o reign_v by_o god_n personal_a appointment_n but_o by_o his_o approbation_n and_o allowance_n only_o as_o all_o other_o governor_n do_v and_o as_o if_o god_n do_v not_o so_o govern_v the_o people_n that_o the_o people_n confer_v kingdom_n according_a to_o the_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n almighty_n though_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o lex_fw-la regius_fw-la give_v their_o power_n to_o romulus_n their_o first_o king_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o thereby_o give_v up_o themselves_o to_o be_v slave_n for_o among_o the_o same_o law_n they_o have_v their_o law_n also_o in_o favour_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n in_o the_o very_a institutes_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o caesar_n reign_n according_a to_o the_o lex_fw-la regius_fw-la by_o the_o choice_n and_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n populi_n suffragia_fw-la sunto_fw-la magistratus_fw-la creanto_fw-la leges_fw-la sciscunto_o pacem_fw-la bellumque_fw-la jubento_fw-la and_o among_o the_o fragment_n the_o first_o law_n be_v jus_fw-la populi_n &_o fuffragia_fw-la sunto_fw-la quodcunque_fw-la postremum_fw-la populus_fw-la jussit_fw-la id_fw-la jus_o ratumque_fw-la 12_o tabul_n lege_fw-la sancitum_fw-la est_fw-la v_o calv._n 983._o 986._o when_o proud_a tarquin_n bestroad_v the_o throne_n and_o violate_v all_o the_o wholesome_a law_n of_o servius_n and_o contemn_v all_o the_o law_n of_o his_o predecessor_n reduce_v all_o to_o lust_n will_n and_o pleasure_n they_o soon_o expel_v he_o and_o change_v their_o kingly_a government_n unto_o consular_a and_o choose_v brutus_n and_o valerius_n for_o their_o consul_n who_o restore_v the_o law_n and_o other_o restore_v the_o people_n to_o their_o ancient_a and_o just_a right_n such_o be_v leges_fw-la valeriae_fw-la sacrariae_n iciliae_fw-la and_o other_o all_o which_o do_v respect_v the_o public_a good_a one_o whereof_o make_v by_o valeria_n brutus_n be_v dead_a be_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o appeal_n to_o the_o people_n against_o all_o magistrate_n administer_a wrongful_o and_o that_o none_o shall_v command_v in_o rome_n but_o they_o on_o who_o the_o people_n shall_v confer_v power_n so_o to_o do_v who_o with_o their_o good_n be_v to_o be_v account_v sacred_a and_o if_o any_o do_v usurp_v such_o power_n without_o their_o consent_n it_o shall_v be_v capital_a calv._n p._n 1009._o such_o a_o kingdom_n be_v by_o aristotle_n call_v most_o proper_o a_o kingdom_n which_o be_v among_o the_o spartan_n where_o notwithstanding_o the_o popular_a power_n be_v above_o the_o kingly_a which_o can_v be_v deny_v where_o the_o people_n pay_v all_o homage_n duty_n honour_n and_o respect_n to_o their_o king_n though_o the_o power_n remain_v with_o they_o which_o they_o do_v not_o ordinary_o exercise_v yet_o on_o just_a occasion_n resume_v and_o obtain_v it_o it_o be_v object_v that_o the_o people_n have_v once_o delegated_a their_o power_n to_o king_n forfeit_v it_o neither_o can_v the_o people_n resume_v it_o yet_o these_o that_o thus_o object_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o people_n may_v resume_v their_o delegated_a power_n from_o any_o other_o kind_n or_o form_n of_o government_n but_o what_o make_v the_o difference_n be_v past_o my_o understanding_n when_o kingly_a and_o all_o other_o government_n receive_v their_o power_n from_o the_o people_n on_o condition_n and_o which_o they_o be_v swear_v to_o observe_v and_o keep_v and_o why_o that_o power_n which_o be_v only_a fiduciary_n and_o
become_v forfeit_v for_o mal-government_n shall_v not_o return_v unto_o they_o who_o delegated_a it_o as_o well_o from_o king_n as_o from_o consul_n senate_n tribune_n duumvirate_n triumvirate_n decemvirate_n ephori_fw-la or_o any_o other_o form_n of_o government_n be_v past_o all_o understanding_n it_o be_v also_o scornful_o object_v this_o be_v to_o be_v a_o duke_n of_o genoa_n a_o duke_n of_o venice_n not_o a_o king._n they_o who_o have_v so_o mean_a conceit_n of_o such_o government_n which_o in_o reality_n be_v as_o much_o approve_v and_o allow_v by_o god_n as_o kingly_a even_o by_o the_o same_o scripture_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o preside_v in_o any_o government_n if_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o millenaries_n be_v true_a and_o christ_n shall_v come_v and_o reign_v upon_o the_o earth_n 1000_o year_n will_v he_o not_o do_v all_o thing_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o govern_v will_v not_o his_o eye_n be_v on_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o land_n and_o on_o they_o that_o excel_v in_o virtue_n will_v he_o not_o hate_v the_o work_n of_o they_o that_o turn_v aside_o will_v he_o know_v a_o wicked_a person_n except_o to_o condemn_v he_o will_v he_o suffer_v they_o that_o have_v high_a look_n or_o proud_a heart_n will_v not_o his_o eye_n be_v on_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o land_n that_o they_o may_v dwell_v with_o he_o shall_v not_o they_o that_o walk_v in_o a_o perfect_a way_n serve_v he_o shall_v they_o that_o work_n deceit_n dwell_v in_o his_o house_n or_o they_o that_o tell_v lie_v tarry_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o will_v he_o not_o destroy_v all_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o land_n and_o cut_v off_o all_o wicked_a doer_n from_o the_o city_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o can_v king_n do_v the_o same_o whether_o their_o power_n be_v absolute_a from_o god_n or_o delegated_a from_o the_o people_n have_v not_o christ_n be_v among_o we_o already_o as_o he_o that_o serve_v and_o shall_v his_o vicegerent_n think_v it_o below_o they_o to_o be_v like_o their_o master_n be_v it_o not_o the_o most_o desirable_a condition_n in_o the_o world_n for_o king_n christian_n to_o be_v so_o seat_v on_o throne_n as_o it_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o do_v the_o least_o injury_n to_o the_o mean_a of_o their_o subject_n and_o yet_o do_v good_a to_o all_o will_v not_o this_o be_v a_o condition_n acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o man_n will_v not_o they_o thereby_o become_v deliciae_fw-la humani_fw-la generis_fw-la as_o once_o titus_n be_v will_v nothing_o please_v but_o quod_fw-la libet_fw-la licet_fw-la their_o will_n and_o pleasure_n to_o be_v their_o law_n that_o justinian-like_a when_o instigate_v by_o a_o imperious_a whorish_a comedian_n theodora_n they_o may_v secure_o commit_v outrage_n and_o cruelty_n sans_o nombre_fw-fr or_o when_o tickle_v with_o a_o dance_a herodias_n shall_v take_v off_o any_o head_n though_o of_o a_o john_n baptist_n or_o when_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o adulterous_a embrace_n shall_v betray_v the_o strength_n of_o a_o nation_n to_o a_o dalilah_n at_o pleasure_n and_o all_o these_o uncontrollable_o when_o the_o roman_n have_v cashier_v proud_a traquin_n their_o king_n and_o in_o he_o kingship_n they_o delegated_a their_o power_n on_o two_o consul_n to_o be_v check_v one_o upon_o the_o other_o that_o if_o one_o exceed_v or_o abuse_v his_o power_n he_o may_v be_v curb_v by_o the_o other_o and_o though_o both_o shall_v agree_v to_o usurp_v or_o extend_v the_o power_n give_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o people_n yet_o both_o consul_n and_o all_o other_o magistrate_n be_v to_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o senate_n whenever_o the_o patrician_n and_o people_n think_v fit_a which_o be_v always_o have_v in_o esteem_n as_o the_o people_n champion_n and_o defender_n of_o their_o right_n and_o law_n tull._n orat_fw-la pro_fw-la sestio_n the_o like_a subject_n be_v the_o decemviri_fw-la and_o all_o other_o the_o magistrate_n to_o the_o senate_n insomuch_o that_o sometime_o the_o counsul_n be_v esteem_v enemy_n before_o they_o quit_v their_o consulship_n and_o the_o senate_n take_v arm_n against_o they_o so_o war_n be_v raise_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o senate_n against_o anthony_n the_o consul_n for_o his_o misdemeanour_n during_o his_o consulship_n on_o the_o contrary_a trajan_n that_o excellent_a emperor_n believe_v he_o to_o have_v be_v send_v from_o heaven_n to_o redeem_v they_o from_o the_o slavery_n of_o former_a tyrant_n and_o to_o restore_v unto_o they_o their_o ancient_a liberty_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sword_n the_o ensign_n and_o badge_n of_o majesty_n and_o power_n unto_o saburanus_n praefect_n of_o the_o praetorian_a cohort_n say_v accipe_fw-la hunc_fw-la gladium_fw-la pro_fw-la i_o si_fw-la recie_n agam_fw-la sin_n aliter_fw-la in_o i_o magis_fw-la quod_fw-la moderatorem_fw-la omnium_fw-la vel_fw-la errare_fw-la minus_fw-la fas_fw-la est_fw-la use_v this_o sword_n for_o my_o defence_n whilst_o i_o govern_v as_o i_o ought_v if_o otherwise_o to_o my_o destruction_n comite_fw-la cestriae_fw-la gladium_fw-la sancti_fw-la edvardi_fw-la qui_fw-la curtain_n dicitur_fw-la ante_fw-la regem_fw-la bajulante_fw-la in_fw-la signum_fw-la quod_fw-la comes_fw-la est_fw-la palatii_fw-la &_o regem_fw-la si_fw-la oberret_fw-la habeat_fw-la de_fw-la jure_fw-la potestatem_fw-la cohibendi_fw-la svo_fw-la sibi_fw-la scilicet_fw-la cestrensi_fw-la constabulario_fw-la ministrante_fw-la &_o virg●_n populum_fw-la cum_fw-la se_fw-la incrdinate_a ingereret_fw-la sub●rahente_fw-la matth._n paris_n lib._n 3._o p._n 563._o n._n 10._o at_o the_o marriage_n of_o henry_n iii_o king_n of_o england_n with_o elinor_n daughter_n of_o raymund_n earl_n of_o provence_n the_o earl_n of_o chester_n carry_v the_o sword_n of_o st._n edward_n call_v curtain_n before_o he_o in_o token_n that_o he_o be_v master_n of_o the_o palace_n and_o that_o he_o have_v public_a authority_n to_o curb_v the_o king_n if_o he_o err_v the_o same_o ensign_n of_o public_a authority_n be_v continue_v to_o this_o very_a day_n before_o the_o king_n of_o england_n king_n charles_n ii_o at_o his_o coronation_n be_v set_v in_o a_o rich_a chair_n under_o a_o glorious_a cloth_n of_o state_n sir_n gilbert_n talbot_n knight_n master_n of_o the_o jewel-house_n present_v the_o sword_n of_o state_n also_o the_o sword_n call_v curtana_n and_o two_o other_o sword_n to_o the_o lord_n high_a constable_n who_o take_v and_o deliver_v they_o to_o the_o lord_n high_a chamberlain_n and_o lay_v they_o on_o the_o table_n before_o the_o king._n the_o like_a power_n have_v the_o master_n of_o the_o palace_n in_o france_n and_o other_o country_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o though_o that_o great_a and_o just_a emperor_n traj_n a_o have_v so_o great_a power_n confer_v on_o he_o yet_o be_v so_o just_a as_o to_o appoint_v a_o judge_n though_o inferior_a to_o he_o over_o his_o action_n how_o much_o more_o just_a therefore_o be_v he_o when_o he_o superior_a in_o power_n have_v all_o the_o army_n and_o conquest_n at_o his_o beck_n and_o consequent_o can_v not_o be_v force_v to_o obey_v the_o senate_n or_o people_n yet_o will_v do_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o office_n and_o duty_n to_o his_o delegator_n and_o thereby_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v his_o superior_a of_o who_o pliny_n in_o his_o panegyric_n say_v that_o senatus_fw-la ut_fw-la susciperet_fw-la quartum_fw-la consulatum_fw-la &_o rogavit_fw-la &_o jussit_fw-la which_o be_v word_n of_o command_n and_o they_o that_o may_v command_v may_v judge_v and_o censure_n so_o marcus_n aurelius_n the_o emperor_n when_o cassius_n the_o praefect_n of_o syria_n endeavour_v to_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n offer_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o senate_n and_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v best_a unto_o they_o now_o who_o can_v better_o judge_v of_o kingly_a power_n than_o such_o just_a and_o upright_a king_n and_o in_o their_o own_o cause_n certain_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n all_o good_a king_n have_v the_o senate_n or_o the_o people_n both_o for_o their_o peer_n and_o superior_n in_o some_o kingdom_n though_o tyrant_n hate_v both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n will_v neither_o have_v superior_a nor_o peer_n as_o of_o old_a law_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n guide_v by_o force_n be_v devise_v so_o when_o law_n come_v to_o be_v despise_v and_o slight_v by_o the_o same_o law_n of_o nature_n there_o must_v recourse_n be_v have_v unto_o force_n again_o so_o to_o think_v be_v just_a and_o prudent_a so_o to_o do_v be_v true_a courage_n so_o to_o think_v and_o do_v be_v the_o height_n of_o a_o prudent_a virtue_n this_o remain_v indelible_a in_o nature_n that_o the_o senate_n or_o people_n be_v always_o superior_a in_o some_o country_n to_o king_n good_a or_o bad_a the_o reason_n be_v natural_a for_o that_o the_o people_n do_v transfer_v their_o own_o power_n or_o to_o speak_v yet_o more_o proper_o the_o use_n and_o exercise_v of_o some_o of_o their_o own_o power_n unto_o king_n the_o
jus_fw-la regiminis_fw-la be_v a_o justification_n of_o defensive_a arm_n in_o general_z and_o consequent_o of_o our_o late_a revolution_n and_o transaction_n to_o be_v the_o just_a right_n of_o the_o kingdom_n license_v june_n 17._o 1689._o j._n fraser_n london_n print_v in_o the_o year_n mdclxxxix_o benedictus_fw-la sit_fw-la prae_fw-la caeteris_fw-la principibus_fw-la wilhelmus_fw-la henricus_fw-la d._n g._n magnae_fw-la britanniae_fw-la francia_fw-la &_o hiberniae_fw-la rex_fw-la qualem_fw-la nec_fw-la viderunt_fw-la avi_fw-la nec_fw-la visuri_fw-la sunt_fw-la nepotes_fw-la qui_fw-la advenerit_fw-la ad_fw-la auxilium_fw-la jehovae_fw-la contra_fw-la potentes_fw-la papicolas_n antichristianos_n tyrannorum_fw-la pessimos_fw-la benedicta_fw-la sit_fw-la prae_fw-la caeteris_fw-la heroinis_fw-la maria_fw-la regina_fw-la conjux_fw-la &_o regni_fw-la censor_n communicatis_fw-la imperii_fw-la fascibus_fw-la fruantur_fw-la illi_fw-la sceptro_fw-la britannico_fw-la parent_n liberorum_fw-la laeti_fw-la &_o aurei_fw-la seculi_fw-la authores_fw-la macti_fw-la virtute_fw-la conculcate_v inimicos_fw-la religionis_fw-la protestantium_fw-la legum_n anglorum_fw-la libertatum_fw-la parliamenti_fw-la ut_fw-la nomina_fw-la vestra_fw-la eant_fw-la in_o mille_fw-la saecula_fw-la sciantque_fw-la posteri_fw-la &_o silij_fw-la nascituri_fw-la surgentes_fw-la enarrent_fw-la filiis_fw-la suis_fw-la &_o semper_fw-la fugiant_fw-la infesti_fw-la osores_fw-la à_fw-la conspectu_fw-la vestro_fw-la sic_fw-la comprecatur_fw-la sic_fw-la vovet_fw-la omni_fw-la supplex_fw-la humilitate_fw-la wilhelmus_fw-la denton_n m._n d._n majestatum_fw-la vestrarum_fw-la subditus_fw-la humillimus_fw-la advertisemfnt_v to_o the_o reader_n this_o treatise_n have_v be_v write_v several_a year_n and_o keep_v close_o because_o the_o government_n will_v not_o bear_v such_o print_n and_o may_v still_o have_v lie_v snug_a but_o that_o i_o daily_o see_v great_a endeavour_n by_o various_a print_n and_o pamphlet_n cast_v false_a gloss_n upon_o a_o good_a cause_n design_v to_o bring_v we_o back_o to_o onion_n and_o garlic_n and_o to_o popery_n the_o worst_a of_o tyranny_n among_o which_o print_v the_o history_n of_o passive_a obedience_n at_o first_o view_n seem_v to_o carry_v in_o its_o front_n for_o its_o better_a countenance_v of_o nonresistance_n the_o most_o flourish_a show_n of_o our_o article_n injunction_n canon_n homile_n liturgy_n both_o our_o university_n bishop_n martyr_n confessor_n etc._n etc._n which_o at_o first_o view_n present_v a_o wonderful_a and_o a_o amaze_a cloud_n of_o witness_n ready_a to_o confound_v the_o doctrine_n of_o resistance_n and_o defensive_a arm_n without_o far_a inquiry_n and_o to_o make_v good_a that_o enslave_v doctrine_n of_o passive_a obedience_n absolute_o absolute_a without_o reserve_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v make_v but_o one_o or_o two_o plain_a remark_n leave_v the_o rest_n to_o better_a pen_n 1._o grant_v all_o the_o quotation_n to_o be_v true_a yet_o be_v they_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o private_a man_n and_o of_o private_a authority_n only_o and_o not_o of_o ordines_fw-la regni_fw-la state_n and_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n 2._o calvin_n though_o quote_v in_o this_o history_n as_o a_o assertor_n of_o such_o passive_a obedience_n of_o which_o he_o treat_v very_o learned_o give_v it_o all_o its_o just_a allowance_n and_o dimension_n yet_o conclude_v notwithstanding_o all_o those_o specious_a expression_n which_o seem_v to_o favour_v passive_a obedience_n that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v always_o speak_v of_o private_a man_n for_o if_o there_o be_v at_o this_o time_n any_o magistrate_n for_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o people_n as_o the_o ephori_fw-la among_o the_o lacedaemonian_n or_o tribune_n at_o rome_n as_o the_o demarchi_fw-la at_o athens_n or_o the_o same_o power_n also_o which_o peradventure_o as_o thing_n be_v now_o the_o estate_n have_v in_o every_o realm_n when_o they_o hold_v their_o diet_n parliament_n principle_n assembly_n he_o do_v not_o forbid_v they_o according_a to_o their_o office_n to_o withstand_v the_o outrageous_a licentiousness_n of_o king_n and_o far_o he_o affirm_v that_o if_o they_o wink_v at_o king_n wilful_o range_v over_o and_o tread_v down_o the_o poor_a commonalty_n their_o dissemble_n be_v not_o without_o wicked_a breach_n of_o faith_n because_o they_o deceitful_o betray_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n whereof_o they_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v protector_n appoint_v by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god._n calvin_n instit_n lib._n 4._o c._n 20._o par_fw-fr 32._o likewise_o his_o quotation_n of_o dr._n jackson_n in_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o bound_n of_o christian_a obedience_n will_v serve_v his_o turn_n as_o little_a as_o that_o out_o of_o calvin_n for_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n p._n 929._o it_o be_v object_v to_o he_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o prelate_n that_o many_o beside_o the_o separatist_n and_o enthusiast_n many_o of_o note_n in_o reform_a church_n have_v publish_v in_o writing_n that_o king_n and_o prince_n may_v in_o some_o case_n be_v depose_v which_o say_v dr._n jackson_n if_o speak_v universal_o their_o doctrine_n be_v false_a and_o for_o such_o condemn_v by_o our_o church_n if_o thus_o they_o teach_v indefinite_o only_a as_o that_o some_o king_n some_o chief_a magistrate_n may_v be_v depose_v he_o know_v no_o church_n that_o just_o condemn_v they_o but_o for_o divine_n to_o determine_v or_o dispute_v what_o prince_n in_o particular_a may_v be_v depose_v or_o in_o what_o case_n be_v matter_n without_o their_o commission_n unless_o command_v by_o their_o prince_n p._n 927._o and_o i_o think_v he_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o and_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o author_n of_o this_o history_n so_o bishop_n jewel_n explain_v st_n paul_n and_o himself_o in_o the_o very_a same_o quotation_n viz._n that_o whosoever_o strike_v with_o the_o sword_n by_o private_a authority_n shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n which_o opinion_n if_o right_o consider_v be_v the_o sense_n or_o meaning_n of_o all_o or_o most_o of_o this_o historian_n 158●_n quotation_n and_o be_v so_o to_o be_v understand_v bishop_n bilson_n how_o slight_o soever_o represent_v by_o this_o historian_n be_v as_o profound_a a_o scholar_n and_o divine_a as_o ever_o sit_v upon_o that_o see_v in_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a subjection_n and_o unchristian_a rebellion_n treat_v of_o nothing_o else_o but_o of_o passive_a obedience_n and_o nonresistance_n at_o large_a and_o no_o man_n better_o or_o more_o solid_o in_o defence_n of_o they_o yet_o will_v not_o rash_o pronounce_v all_o that_o resist_v to_o be_v rebel_n if_o a_o king_n shall_v go_v about_o to_o subject_a the_o kingdom_n to_o a_o foreign_a realm_n which_o happy_o be_v not_o much_o dissimular_a to_o our_o present_a constitution_n and_o transaction_n to_o change_v the_o form_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n from_o empery_n to_o tyranny_n or_o neglect_v the_o law_n establish_v by_o common_a consent_n of_o prince_n and_o people_n to_o execute_v his_o own_o pleasure_n in_o those_o and_o other_o case_n if_o the_o noble_n and_o commons_o join_v together_o to_o defend_v their_o ancient_a liberty_n regiment_n and_o law_n they_o may_v not_o well_o be_v account_v rebel_n very_o modest_o express_v p._n 520._o and_o more_o at_o large_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n may_v be_v read_v in_o several_a place_n of_o this_o book_n which_o opinion_n of_o these_o great_a and_o learned_a man_n be_v a_o justification_n of_o the_o present_a transaction_n of_o our_o ordines_fw-la regni_fw-la who_o have_v so_o considerable_a a_o share_n in_o the_o government_n that_o no_o law_n can_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v make_v without_o they_o and_o i_o may_v true_o say_v without_o prejudice_n that_o those_o very_a author_n be_v all_o of_o the_o historian_n own_o quote_v have_v write_v as_o profound_o and_o solid_o for_o passive_a obedience_n and_o nonresistance_n as_o it_o will_v bear_v or_o that_o all_o his_o other_o quotation_n do_v or_o can_v make_v out_o and_o bishop_n bilson_n that_o great_a scholar_n and_o divine_a print_v his_o book_n 1585._o and_o dedicate_v it_o to_o queen_n elizabeth_n of_o ever_o bless_a memory_n who_o happy_a government_n be_v such_o as_o she_o do_v not_o think_v such_o resistance_n unlawful_a and_o therefore_o she_o soon_o promote_v he_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o worcester_n anno_fw-la 1595._o and_o soon_o after_o viz._n anno_fw-la 1597._o translate_v he_o to_o winchester_n and_o i_o think_v these_o man_n understand_v the_o doctrine_n article_n canon_n liturgy_n homily_n university_n etc._n etc._n of_o this_o and_o of_o other_o church_n abroad_o as_o well_o as_o this_o historian_n or_o as_o any_o of_o the_o other_o author_n as_o he_o have_v name_v beside_o queen_n elizabeth_n do_v not_o only_o approve_v the_o publication_n of_o such_o doctrine_n in_o her_o government_n but_o be_v willing_a to_o avoid_v the_o curse_n that_o bitter_a curse_n of_o meroz_n on_o she_o and_o her_o kingdom_n she_o give_v this_o far_a testimony_n and_o demonstration_n by_o her_o own_n and_o countenance_v such_o resistance_n and_o by_o she_o entere_v into_o contract_n with_o the_o protestant_n of_o france_n against_o the_o mighty_a by_o send_v money_n and_o
force_n to_o their_o aid_n and_o assistance_n she_o do_v the_o like_a by_o send_v succour_n to_o the_o scot_n whereby_o she_o deliver_v they_o from_o slavery_n and_o popery_n against_o mary_n queen_n of_o scot_n and_o the_o guise_n so_o she_o do_v most_o earnest_o mediate_v and_o intercede_v by_o letter_n and_o embassy_n with_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n who_o have_v violent_o tyrannize_v and_o oppress_v the_o netherlander_n by_o his_o bloody_a edict_n both_o in_o their_o law_n liberty_n and_o religion_n and_o not_o prevail_v she_o send_v they_o money_n and_o arm_n and_o take_v they_o into_o her_o protection_n by_o which_o she_o relieve_v and_o establish_v they_o in_o that_o flourish_a condition_n they_o now_o be_v in_o both_o able_a and_o willing_a grateful_o to_o return_v the_o same_o kindness_n to_o this_o our_o kingdom_n in_o her_o great_a distress_n by_o the_o like_a bloody_a papist_n in_o which_o she_o have_v not_o only_o the_o judgement_n and_o assistance_n of_o her_o parliament_n but_o their_o purse_n also_o and_o also_o the_o opinion_n and_o approbation_n of_o her_o clergy_n in_o their_o convocation_n with_o their_o subsidy_n all_o which_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v hold_v all_o resistance_n unlawful_a and_o sure_o this_o historian_n will_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o queen_n and_o her_o parliament_n and_o convocation_n be_v true_a church_n of_o england_n man_n so_o he_o may_v make_v it_o the_o cornerstone_n and_o distinguish_a character_n if_o he_o please_v of_o a_o true_a and_o of_o a_o mongrel_n church_n of_o england_n man_n and_o if_o he_o do_v i_o doubt_v he_o will_v approve_v himself_o no_o nathaniel_n no_o true_a church_n of_o england_n man._n to_o what_o then_o do_v all_o this_o bravado_n of_o article_n canon_n homile_n liturgy_n etc._n etc._n tend_v but_o to_o the_o bespatter_a of_o the_o pure_a church_n in_o the_o world_n with_o such_o doctrine_n as_o she_o be_v no_o way_n guilty_a of_o and_o to_o introduce_v and_o usher_v in_o popery_n again_o which_o be_v rush_v in_o upon_o we_o with_o a_o mighy_v torrent_n by_o the_o slight_a of_o such_o prevaricate_a wit_n that_o lay_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v until_o his_o majesty_n do_v abdicare_fw-la se_fw-la magistratu_fw-la but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n we_o be_v not_o such_o child_n as_o to_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n with_o such_o cunning_a craftiness_n happy_o king_n james_n i._o if_o consult_v may_v be_v find_v to_o favour_v the_o same_o opinion_n when_o in_o his_o speech_n in_o parliament_n 1603._o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o servant_n and_o that_o as_o he_o be_v head_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o people_n in_o his_o dominion_n who_o be_v his_o natural_a vassal_n and_o subject_n consider_v they_o in_o number_n and_o distinct_a rank_n but_o consider_v the_o whole_a people_n as_o one_o body_n and_o mass_n then_o as_o the_o head_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o body_n and_o not_o the_o body_n for_o the_o head_n so_o must_v a_o righteous_a king_n know_v himself_o to_o be_v ordain_v for_o his_o people_n and_o not_o his_o people_n for_o he_o and_o therefore_o profess_v that_o he_o will_v never_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v his_o principal_a honour_n to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n and_o ever_o to_o think_v the_o prosperity_n thereof_o to_o be_v his_o great_a felicity_n and_o in_o his_o speech_n at_o whitehall_n anno_fw-la 1609._o march_n 21._o say_v that_o every_o just_a king_n in_o a_o settle_a kingdom_n be_v bind_v to_o observe_v the_o paction_n which_o god_n make_v with_o noah_n after_o the_o deluge_n therefore_o a_o king_n leave_v to_o be_v a_o king_n and_o degenerate_v into_o a_o tyrant_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o leave_v off_o to_o govern_v by_o his_o law_n as_o the_o poor_a widow_n to_o philip_n of_o macedon_n either_o govern_v according_a to_o your_o law_n aut_fw-la ne_fw-la rex_fw-la sis_fw-la therefore_o all_o king_n that_o be_v not_o tyrant_n or_o perjure_a will_v be_v glad_a to_o bound_v themselves_o within_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o law_n and_o they_o that_o persuade_v they_o to_o the_o contrary_n be_v viper_n and_o pest_n both_o against_o they_o and_o the_o commonwealth_n which_o premise_n do_v natural_o yield_v this_o conclusion_n without_o wrest_v viz._n that_o king_n not_o govern_v according_o to_o their_o compact_n and_o law_n make_v by_o their_o subject_n be_v perjure_a and_o become_v tyrant_n and_o may_v be_v curb_v oppose_a and_o withstand_v thus_o much_o only_o by_o way_n of_o specimen_fw-la to_o encourage_v other_o more_o learned_a pen_n to_o make_v far_a proof_n it_o be_v every_o man_n duty_n to_o contribute_v what_o he_o can_v towards_o the_o support_n of_o that_o government_n under_o which_o he_o live_v no_o government_n be_v oblige_v to_o support_v those_o who_o will_v not_o support_v it_o which_o incourage_v i_o to_o cast_v in_o my_o mite_n also_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o i_o observe_v some_o print_v so_o virulent_a as_o to_o ill-characterize_a the_o great_a wisdom_n and_o wise_a man_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o make_v common_a sense_n and_o true_a equity_n and_o the_o most_o undoubted_a right_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n treason_n and_o rebellion_n and_o so_o to_o be_v own_v and_o practise_v in_o extremity_n by_o all_o nation_n vim_fw-la vi_fw-la repellendo_fw-la which_o be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o unjust_a force_n the_o defence_n must_v be_v just_a and_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v make_v either_o treason_n or_o rebellion_n by_o any_o other_o law_n than_o that_o the_o fox_n ear_n be_v horn_n and_o other_o will_v make_v this_o wild_a conjecture_n of_o passive_a obedience_n without_o reserve_n as_o the_o cornerstone_n and_o distinguish_a character_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n from_o all_o other_o reform_a church_n which_o deserve_v a_o sponge_n and_o reprimand_n and_o not_o a_o answer_n a_o admonition_n to_o all_o christian_a emperor_n king_n prince_n etc._n etc._n all_o emperor_n king_n prince_n and_o governor_n ought_v most_o serious_o to_o consider_v that_o though_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o good_a will_n and_o choice_n of_o man_n they_o be_v set_v on_o high_a yet_o they_o be_v not_o king_n and_o lord_n and_o prince_n in_o their_o own_o right_n and_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o that_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o superior_a dominion_n what_o be_v they_o but_o vassal_n to_o god_n by_o who_o providence_n they_o hold_v their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n life_n and_o all_o by_o fealty_n and_o homage_n and_o what_o be_v they_o but_o administrator_n and_o trustee_n of_o the_o govern_v to_o see_v the_o law_n make_v by_o they_o indifferent_o and_o equal_o execute_v for_o the_o peace_n and_o happiness_n of_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o in_o recompense_n of_o their_o care_n and_o pain_n that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a condition_n or_o law_n of_o subject_n that_o they_o do_v support_v their_o king_n and_o governor_n and_o that_o they_o keep_v fidelity_n with_o and_o pay_v tribute_n reverence_n and_o service_n unto_o they_o so_o strict_a be_v this_o obligation_n that_o in_o all_o case_n of_o danger_n subject_n be_v bind_v to_o aid_n and_o assist_v they_o and_o to_o yield_v all_o the_o duty_n of_o honour_n friendship_n reverence_n and_o respect_n and_o to_o take_v up_o arm_n on_o their_o behalf_n against_o their_o very_a brother_n and_o child_n and_o to_o pay_v they_o tribute_n for_o their_o grandeur_n and_o support_n where_o faith_n and_o honour_n be_v concern_v a_o eternal_a blemish_n will_v remain_v on_o the_o violation_n thereof_o if_o they_o offend_v their_o king_n by_o unjust_a contrivance_n and_o blemish_v their_o dignity_n and_o honour_n by_o unjust_a aspersion_n if_o they_o plot_v contrive_v and_o wage_v war_n unjust_o against_o they_o if_o they_o desert_n they_o in_o a_o time_n of_o danger_n if_o they_o treacherous_o conceal_v any_o that_o endeavour_n to_o kill_v imprison_v or_o damnify_v they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o deliver_v they_o when_o in_o danger_n if_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o do_v it_o they_o be_v then_o guilty_a of_o treason_n see_v therefore_o king_n require_v so_o much_o fidelity_n from_o their_o subject_n for_o defend_v their_o person_n state_n and_o dignity_n who_o be_v but_o man_n on_o both_o part_n in_o how_o much_o great_a obligation_n and_o under_o what_o severe_a penalty_n be_v king_n themselves_o bind_v towards_o the_o giver_n and_o bequeather_n of_o their_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o people_n against_o all_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n to_o he_o and_o their_o law_n but_o ah_o the_o misery_n of_o human_a blindness_n all_o prince_n be_v ready_a to_o cry_v out_o that_o when_o any_o man_n become_v guilty_a of_o such_o breach_n of_o faith_n towards_o they_o it_o
be_v a_o crime_n unpardonable_a and_o that_o it_o must_v be_v punish_v with_o the_o loss_n of_o good_n life_n and_o estate_n man_n to_o man_n still_o but_o when_o they_o themselves_o break_v faith_n plight_v to_o god_n and_o man_n by_o solemn_a oath_n and_o do_v thing_n ten_o thousand_o time_n worse_o against_o their_o supreme_a lord_n and_o master_n and_o the_o govern_v yet_o such_o be_v the_o wonderful_a perverse_a end_n of_o their_o judgement_n that_o they_o imagine_v themselves_o to_o be_v innocent_a and_o unaccountable_a whereas_o by_o right_n they_o ought_v to_o hazard_v and_o spend_v their_o own_o life_n and_o sceptre_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o glory_n from_o and_o under_o who_o they_o hold_v those_o life_n and_o sceptre_n and_o for_o defence_n support_v and_o well_o govern_v of_o the_o govern_v that_o they_o may_v live_v in_o wealth_n peace_n and_o godliness_n they_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n who_o nursing-fathers_n and_o mother_n king_n and_o queen_n and_o all_o other_o ruler_n as_o in_o duty_n bind_v of_o right_a aught_o to_o be_v more_o especial_o if_o they_o confer_v honour_n dignity_n or_o place_n of_o profit_n on_o any_o of_o their_o subject_n prerogative_n give_v they_o even_o by_o the_o govern_v if_o they_o say_v not_o as_o they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o obey_v all_o their_o command_n right_a or_o wrong_n what_o a_o huff_n and_o fustian_n fume_n be_v they_o in_o what_o eat_v of_o their_o bread_n drink_v of_o their_o drink_n and_o live_v at_o ease_n and_o in_o great_a plenty_n and_o pleasure_n by_o their_o favour_n and_o grace_n bestow_v on_o they_o and_o yet_o so_o ungrateful_a as_o not_o to_o subordinate_a their_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o their_o prince_n which_o arise_v from_o corrupt_a nature_n and_o their_o own_o great_a mistake_n for_o king_n themselves_o and_o all_o their_o officer_n be_v the_o kingdom_n officer_n clothe_v with_o their_o fleece_n warm_v with_o their_o wool_n feed_v with_o their_o bread_n their_o oil_n and_o their_o wine_n and_o pay_v with_o their_o tribute_n and_o be_v it_o not_o much_o more_o sinful_a and_o ungrateful_a in_o they_o to_o do_v violence_n or_o oppress_v any_o of_o they_o do_v they_o not_o dig_v and_o delve_v plough_v and_o harrow_n sow_n and_o reap_v plant_v and_o pull_v up_o with_o the_o labour_n of_o their_o hand_n and_o sweat_v of_o their_o brow_n and_o all_o this_o to_o pay_v they_o tribute_n that_o they_o may_v live_v in_o great_a glory_n and_o plenty_n that_o they_o may_v eat_v the_o fat_a drink_v the_o sweet_a lie_v upon_o the_o soft_a chant_v to_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o vial_n drink_v wine_n in_o bowl_n that_o they_o may_v be_v gorgeous_o clad_v and_o fare_v delicious_o every_o day_n be_v it_o not_o therefore_o much_o more_o abominable_a wicked_a and_o ungrateful_a in_o they_o to_o oppress_v or_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o they_o that_o set_v their_o crown_n on_o their_o head_n and_o maintain_v they_o in_o all_o their_o glory_n and_o excess_n not_o only_o for_o necessity_n but_o for_o delight_n consider_v serious_o with_o yourselves_o whilst_o you_o be_v yet_o on_o this_o side_n the_o grave_a for_o there_o be_v no_o work_n nor_o device_n nor_o knowledge_n nor_o wisdom_n in_o the_o grave_n eccl._n 9_o 10._o and_o all_o your_o pomp_n must_v be_v bring_v down_o to_o the_o grave_n even_o lucifer_n the_o sun_n of_o the_o morning_n who_o do_v weaken_v the_o nation_n how_o do_v he_o fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o be_v cut_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n isaiah_n 14._o 12._o that_o you_o can_v oppress_v the_o govern_v without_o be_v guilty_a of_o ingratitude_n the_o vile_a and_o base_a of_o crime_n in_o the_o esteem_n both_o of_o heathen_n and_o christian_n and_o by_o the_o practice_n even_o of_o bruit_n and_o beast_n first_o gratitude_n be_v natural_a and_o therefore_o ungratefulness_n must_v be_v unnatural_a witness_v beast_n themselves_o not_o only_o tame_v and_o domestic_a but_o even_o wild_a and_o cruel_a among_o who_o there_o be_v many_o excellent_a and_o true_a example_n as_o of_o the_o lion_n towards_o the_o roman_a slave_n etc._n etc._n officia_fw-la etiam_fw-la ferae_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la even_o wild_a beast_n be_v sensible_a of_o good_a and_o evil_n do_v unto_o they_o by_o which_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o guess_v how_o unnatural_a how_o unpleasing_a and_o odious_a how_o base_a and_o villainous_a ingratitude_n be_v unto_o all_o man_n quatenus_fw-la men_n only_o dixeris_fw-la maledicta_fw-la cuncta_fw-la cum_fw-la ingratum_fw-la hominem_fw-la dixeris_fw-la thou_o speak_v all_o the_o evil_n that_o may_v be_v say_v of_o a_o man_n when_o thou_o call_v man_n ungrateful_a it_o be_v against_o nature_n and_o therefore_o plato_n speak_v of_o his_o disciple_n aristotle_n call_v he_o a_o ungrateful_a mule_n it_o be_v without_o all_o excuse_n and_o can_v come_v but_o from_o a_o wicked_a nature_n so_o seneca_n grave_a vitium_fw-la intollerabile_fw-la quod_fw-la dissociat_fw-la homines_fw-la a_o grievous_a vice_n and_o intolerable_a which_o break_v the_o society_n of_o men._n if_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o example_n of_o bruit_n unreasonable_a creature_n ingratitude_n be_v so_o vile_a a_o crime_n that_o it_o become_v a_o reproach_n to_o man_n as_o be_v reasonable_a creature_n how_o much_o great_a reproach_n be_v ingratitude_n in_o man_n as_o christian_n god_n command_n be_v love_v your_o enemy_n bless_v they_o that_o curse_v you_o do_v good_a to_o they_o that_o hate_v you_o and_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o despiteful_o use_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o that_o you_o may_v be_v child_n of_o your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o rise_v on_o the_o evil_a and_o the_o good_a and_o send_v rain_n on_o the_o just_a and_o on_o the_o unjust_a matth._n 5._o 44_o 45._o so_o luke_n 6._o 27_o 35._o for_o he_o be_v kind_a to_o the_o unthankful_a and_o to_o the_o evil_n so_o ought_v all_o king_n and_o ruler_n to_o love_v their_o people_n though_o enemy_n out_o of_o gratitude_n they_o owe_v to_o god_n who_o have_v both_o command_v we_o so_o to_o do_v and_o who_o daily_a practice_n it_o be_v how_o do_v god_n upbraid_v and_o reproach_v the_o ungrateful_a jew_n hear_v o_o heaven_n and_o give_v ear_n o_o earth_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v i_o have_v nourish_v and_o bring_v up_o child_n and_o they_o have_v rebel_v against_o i_o the_o ox_n know_v his_o owner_n and_o the_o ass_n his_o master_n crib_n but_o israel_n do_v not_o know_v my_o people_n do_v not_o consider_v etc._n etc._n isaiah_n 1_o what_o reproach_n and_o woe_n be_v pronounce_v against_o those_o ungrateful_a jew_n for_o who_o god_n have_v do_v so_o much_o when_o israel_n be_v a_o child_n then_o god_n love_v he_o and_o teach_v ephraim_n also_o to_o go_v take_v they_o by_o the_o arm_n draw_v they_o with_o cord_n of_o a_o man_n with_o band_n of_o love_n and_o be_v to_o they_o as_o they_o that_o take_v off_o the_o yoke_n on_o their_o jaw_n and_o lay_v meat_n unto_o they_o etc._n etc._n hos_fw-la 11._o all_o the_o prophet_n testify_v throughout_o the_o whole_a bible_n that_o gratitude_n be_v the_o universal_a precept_n and_o command_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o he_o be_v the_o avenger_n of_o all_o ingratitude_n and_o disobedience_n do_v you_o thus_o requite_v the_o lord_n o_o foolish_a people_n and_o unwise_a deut._n 22._o 6._o god_n be_v so_o gracious_a as_o to_o let_v the_o sun_n shine_v on_o the_o just_a and_o on_o the_o unjust_a to_o requite_v good_a for_o evil_n how_o ought_v king_n then_o as_o his_o minister_n his_o vicegerent_n not_o to_o requite_v evil_a for_o good_a but_o good_a for_o evil_n how_o much_o more_o be_v king_n then_o oblige_v to_o god_n and_o man_n by_o their_o great_a obligation_n to_o keep_v faith_n and_o covenant_n with_o their_o people_n who_o choose_v they_o from_o among_o themselves_o to_o be_v their_o king_n set_v they_o on_o throne_n in_o a_o more_o eminent_a and_o glorious_a station_n and_o figure_n above_o all_o themselves_o pay_v they_o all_o the_o ensign_n of_o honour_n duty_n and_o majesty_n give_v they_o abundant_a tribute_n to_o support_v the_o same_o what_o to_o do_v to_o tear_v they_o with_o thorn_n and_o briar_n or_o whip_v they_o with_o scorpious_a or_o grind_v their_o face_n as_o many_o have_v do_v no_o no_o but_o to_o have_v their_o law_n run_v in_o their_o name_n and_o execute_v by_o legal_a power_n in_o their_o name_n that_o justice_n may_v be_v equal_o and_o indifferent_o administer_v to_o all_o they_o claim_v and_o glory_n in_o the_o title_n of_o be_v god_n vicegerent_n and_o minister_n and_o therefore_o their_o ministration_n ought_v more_o especial_o to_o be_v for_o the_o happiness_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o kingdom_n if_o otherways_o know_v that_o god_n will_v cut_v off_o the_o spirit_n of_o prince_n he_o be_v terrible_a to_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n psal_n 76
all_o his_o saint_n ps_n 149._o 4_o 5_o 8_o 9_o it_o be_v piety_n alone_o that_o ennoble_v king_n give_v they_o a_o mighty_a character_n and_o establish_v their_o throne_n therefore_o king_n ought_v to_o be_v like_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n comfortable_o influence_v all_o their_o subject_n by_o govern_v just_o and_o live_v upright_o have_v their_o eye_n on_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o land_n and_o on_o they_o that_o excel_v in_o virtue_n and_o not_o suffer_v those_o that_o make_v king_n glad_a with_o their_o wickedness_n and_o prince_n with_o their_o lie_n hos_fw-la 7._o 3._o to_o tarry_v in_o their_o sight_n it_o be_v a_o abomination_n in_o king_n to_o work_v wickedness_n for_o the_o throne_n be_v establish_v by_o righteousness_n if_o solomon_n the_o wise_a king_n that_o ever_o do_v or_o ever_o will_v sit_v upon_o a_o throne_n can_v judge_v prov._n 16._o 12._o so_o pope_n leo_n ep._n 7._o to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n tune_n est_fw-la optimus_fw-la regni_fw-la vestri_fw-la status_fw-la quando_fw-la sempiternae_fw-la &_o incommutabili_fw-la trinitati_fw-la unius_fw-la dei_fw-la confession_n servitur_fw-la then_o be_v the_o state_n of_o your_o kingdom_n in_o it_o its_o glory_n when_o it_o serve_v and_o acknowledge_v one_o eternal_a god_n in_o the_o immutable_a trinity_n this_o god_n have_v demonstrate_v by_o a_o iliad_n of_o example_n both_o of_o old_a and_o more_o puny_a day_n by_o punish_v king_n govern_v tyrannical_o more_o signal_o and_o especial_o in_o nabuchadnezzar_n who_o not_o conform_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o daniel_n by_o break_v off_o his_o sin_n by_o righteousness_n and_o his_o iniqity_n by_o show_v mercy_n unto_o the_o poor_a be_v turn_v into_o a_o very_a brute_n be_v drive_v from_o man_n to_o dwell_v with_o wild_a ass_n to_o eat_v grass_n with_o ox_n till_o seven_o time_n have_v pass_v over_o he_o his_o body_n wet_a with_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n his_o hair_n grow_v like_o eagle_n feather_n and_o his_o nail_n like_o bird_n claw_n before_o his_o understanding_n return_v unto_o he_o to_o bless_v god_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o most_o high_a rule_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n dan._n 4._o so_o aver_v david_n a_o king_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n man_n that_o be_v in_o honour_n and_o understand_v not_o be_v like_o the_o beast_n that_o perish_v psalm_n 49._o ver_fw-la 20._o what_o this_o understanding_n be_v be_v declare_v job_n 28._o 28._o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v wisdom_n and_o to_o depart_v from_o evil_n that_o be_v understanding_n all_o other_o wisdom_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o be_v but_o brutish_a which_o make_v constantine_n the_o great_a to_o esteem_v all_o principality_n not_o subservient_fw-fr to_o the_o law_n of_o heaven_n to_o be_v far_o worse_o than_o the_o government_n of_o goat-keeper_n shepherd_n and_o cowherd_n euseb_n orat._n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o insidel_n who_o have_v no_o right_a knowledge_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o his_o law_n the_o supreme_a law_n be_v only_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o civil_a state_n and_o its_o temporal_a happiness_n but_o when_o a_o gentile_a state_n become_v christian_a then_o consequent_o it_o become_v also_o a_o church_n whereby_o it_o lose_v nothing_o which_o it_o have_v before_o but_o acquire_v a_o new_a perfection_n by_o accrument_n of_o divine_a power_n add_v to_o the_o civil_a and_o consequent_o a_o great_a duty_n incumbent_n on_o the_o governor_n thereof_o to_o seek_v and_o procure_v the_o welfare_n and_o happiness_n such_o kingdom_n so_o unite_v and_o so_o interweave_v be_v in_o a_o more_o special_a manner_n the_o inheritance_n and_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o his_o father_n give_v he_o as_o the_o purchase_n of_o his_o bitter_a passion_n ask_v of_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o thy_o possession_n psalm_n 2._o 8._o and_o christ_n do_v embrace_v the_o glory_n of_o this_o his_o kingdom_n so_o incorporate_v with_o so_o much_o more_o tenderness_n and_o affection_n than_o the_o pomp_n and_o pride_n of_o all_o earthly_a kingdom_n as_o that_o he_o threaten_v those_o king_n nation_n and_o kingdom_n that_o will_v not_o serve_v he_o shall_v perish_v and_o be_v utter_o waste_v isaiah_n 60._o 12._o speak_v every_o man_n truth_n in_o his_o heart_n to_o his_o neighbour_n execute_v the_o judgement_n of_o truth_n and_o peace_n in_o your_o gate_n therefore_o love_v the_o truth_n and_o peace_n zechar._n 8._o 16_o 19_o be_v divine_a oracle_n and_o shall_v challenge_v obedience_n from_o every_o individual_a but_o more_o particular_o and_o especial_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v respect_n unto_o those_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o helm_n that_o execute_v the_o judgement_n of_o truth_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o gate_n it_o be_v no_o doubt_n as_o great_a a_o fault_n to_o be_v silent_a when_o one_o ought_v to_o speak_v as_o to_o speak_v when_o one_o shall_v hold_v his_o peace_n sin_n of_o omission_n be_v no_o less_o dangerous_a than_o sin_n of_o commission_n i_o think_v i_o do_v no_o dis-service_n to_o the_o public_a or_o transgress_v the_o duty_n of_o honesty_n or_o loyalty_n if_o i_o endeavour_v by_o pen_n to_o set_v the_o right_n of_o government_n on_o a_o sure_a and_o right_a foundation_n when_o i_o see_v daily_o so_o many_o false_a principle_n exorbitant_a power_n and_o vnaccountableness_n attribute_v to_o chief_a magistrate_n as_o may_v make_v very_a saint_n to_o transgress_v in_o government_n that_o happy_o otherwise_o will_v not_o and_o these_o not_o write_v by_o vulgar_a pen_n only_o but_o preach_v and_o print_v by_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o may_v be_v deliver_v with_o the_o better_a grace_n and_o great_a authority_n though_o not_o without_o most_o palpable_a wrest_n of_o scripture_n to_o wrong_v sense_n and_o purpose_n which_o in_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o more_o abominable_a but_o god_n shall_v cut_v off_o all_o flatter_a lip_n and_o tongue_n that_o speak_v proud_a thing_n psalm_n 12._o 3._o there_o be_v so_o many_o sermon_n full_o fraught_v with_o such_o principle_n that_o they_o who_o be_v esteem_v the_o governor_n of_o our_o church_n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o they_o yet_o they_o who_o it_o most_o concern_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o true_a and_o false_a doctrine_n be_v silent_a which_o seem_v to_o argue_v consent_n have_v encourage_v i_o to_o put_v pen_n to_o paper_n to_o assert_v the_o truth_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v as_o a_o crime_n to_o any_o who_o bring_v the_o action_n of_o prince_n pope_n or_o prelate_n to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n truth_n though_o it_o beget_v hatred_n to_o the_o asserter_n thereof_o yet_o like_o the_o sun_n be_v a_o public_a good_a which_o neither_o exempt_v prince_n pope_n private_a man_n no_o nor_o angel_n from_o her_o law_n i_o have_v follow_v as_o near_o as_o i_o can_v the_o beam_n of_o that_o sun_n by_o adhere_v close_o to_o true_a principle_n of_o nature_n of_o reason_n and_o of_o scripture_n if_o any_o light_n i_o have_v give_v have_v discover_v false_a gloss_n or_o truth_n from_o error_n no_o reason_n to_o quarrel_n either_o with_o the_o truth_n themselves_o or_o with_o the_o assertor_n of_o they_o truth_n seasonable_o speak_v can_v hurt_v no_o body_n if_o false_a principle_n be_v censure_v and_o adjudge_v by_o divine_a by_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n and_o disapprove_v by_o christian_a religion_n be_v please_v or_o displease_v who_o will_v it_o matter_n not_o the_o care_n be_v take_v it_o be_v more_o than_o human_a tyranny_n to_o deprive_v faith_n and_o truth_n of_o tongue_n or_o pen_n for_o their_o defence_n where_o truth_n make_v no_o distinction_n of_o person_n i_o dare_v not_o i_o only_o condemn_v what_o she_o do_v without_o respect_n have_v to_o person_n great_a or_o small_a if_o they_o clash_v with_o truth_n or_o endeavour_v to_o obscure_v her_o brightness_n to_o assert_v truth_n be_v no_o point_n of_o arrogance_n and_o to_o search_v for_o truth_n when_o it_o be_v conceal_v be_v the_o begin_n of_o charity_n and_o to_o assert_v it_o with_o constancy_n when_o it_o be_v apparent_a be_v the_o consummation_n of_o charity_n and_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n thereof_o be_v the_o beginning_n and_o consummation_n of_o happiness_n for_o who_o can_v be_v more_o bless_v than_o he_o who_o enjoy_v truth_n in_o its_o excellency_n constancy_n and_o immutability_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o fear_v honour_n and_o reverence_n be_v due_a to_o magistrate_n but_o more_o to_o truth_n for_o god_n be_v truth_n nor_o be_v it_o reverence_n with_o base_a flattery_n or_o ignorant_a blindness_n to_o hide_v the_o public_a blemish_n and_o miscarriage_n of_o the_o action_n of_o great_a men._n no_o no_o it_o be_v downright_a flatter_a profaneness_n dissemble_v and_o betray_v the_o truth_n of_o god._n it_o be_v much_o more_o christian_a
honour_n to_o declare_v they_o with_o christian_a charity_n and_o reprove_v they_o with_o christian_a modesty_n thou_o shall_v not_o hate_v thy_o brother_n in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o shall_v in_o any_o wise_a rebuke_n thy_o neighbour_n and_o not_o suffer_v sin_n to_o fall_v upon_o he_o levit._n 19_o 17._o whether_o he_o be_v of_o a_o great_a or_o little_a figure_n in_o the_o world_n it_o matter_n not_o go_v tell_v judah_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o israel_n of_o her_o transgression_n be_v who_o will_v please_v or_o displease_v therewith_o by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o though_o reproof_n and_o admonition_n have_v be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o person_n from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o religion_n cry_v aloud_o spare_v not_o lift_v up_o your_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n proclaim_v defiance_n sound_v a_o challenge_n and_o charge_n against_o they_o show_v the_o people_n their_o transgression_n and_o the_o house_n of_o jacob_n their_o sin_n isaiah_n 58._o 1._o yet_o they_o be_v seldom_o or_o never_o acceptable_a but_o on_o the_o contrary_a get_v hatred_n to_o those_o that_o discover_v their_o dalilah_n their_o bosom_n sin_n but_o their_o comfort_n be_v that_o by_o reprove_v they_o fulfil_v god_n precept_n and_o he_o that_o hate_v reproof_n err_v be_v brutish_a and_o shall_v die_v pro._n 10._o 1._o 15._o pro._n 12._o 15._o pro._n 10._o a_o most_o strange_a and_o unhappy_a temper_n to_o return_v hatred_n for_o good_a will_n to_o hate_v those_o that_o show_v the_o great_a kindness_n that_o possible_o mortal_a man_n can_v show_v he_o that_o regard_v reproof_n shall_v be_v honour_v and_o be_v prudent_a prov._n 13._o 18._o pro._n 15._o 5._o he_o that_o refuse_v instruction_n despise_v his_o own_o soul_n but_o he_o that_o hear_v reproof_n get_v understanding_n ver_fw-la 32._o as_o to_o despise_v dominion_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n be_v a_o great_a crime_n to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o judge_n so_o there_o be_v a_o woe_n to_o they_o who_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil_n that_o put_v darkness_n for_o light_n and_o light_n for_o darkness_n isaiah_n 5._o 20._o wherefore_o if_o they_o who_o immediate_a duty_n it_o be_v to_o tell_v judah_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o israel_n of_o her_o transgression_n will_v by_o a_o sinful_a compliance_n be_v silent_a or_o daub_v with_o untempered_a mortar_n not_o dare_v to_o declare_v plain_a truth_n which_o be_v tant_fw-fr à_fw-fr monte_fw-fr a_o tacit_a give_v consent_n and_o countenance_n to_o public_a sin_n and_o injury_n by_o such_o their_o connivance_n and_o dissimulation_n i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o blame_v those_o who_o dare_v call_v vice_n by_o their_o proper_a name_n i_o be_o ignorant_a of_o such_o quirk_n of_o conscience_n which_o so_o much_o injure_v justice_n and_o piety_n as_o by_o such_o pervert_n the_o plain_a truth_n of_o religion_n and_o prevaricate_a with_o god_n almighty_a by_o please_a man_n rather_o than_o truth_n as_o if_o both_o may_v not_o and_o ought_v not_o to_o stand_v together_o as_o if_o a_o due_a respect_n to_o man_n even_o to_o great_a man_n and_o a_o just_a censure_n of_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n may_v not_o just_o be_v maintain_v so_o that_o if_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o present_a discourse_n seem_v more_o harsh_a or_o severe_a than_o usual_a it_o be_v intend_v against_o the_o vice_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o power_n not_o against_o the_o person_n nor_o any_o just_a power_n if_o they_o be_v truth_n that_o i_o have_v declare_v i_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v if_o error_n they_o will_v easy_o be_v discover_v and_o refute_v and_o the_o great_a truth_n will_v appear_v if_o i_o have_v commit_v error_n and_o injure_a truth_n i_o be_o sensible_a of_o my_o own_o infirmity_n and_o that_o reason_n be_v seldom_o so_o perfect_o reduce_v to_o science_n but_o that_o i_o and_o all_o other_o may_v be_v mistake_v humanum_fw-la est_fw-la errare_fw-la let_v those_o that_o shall_v discover_v such_o error_n consider_v that_o they_o themselves_o be_v man_n and_o subject_a to_o like_a error_n and_o frailty_n and_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o that_o possible_o when_o by_o disquisition_n a_o great_a light_n may_v discover_v that_o that_o may_v be_v the_o reader_n mistake_v which_o he_o esteem_v may_v be_v the_o writer_n error_n in_o sum_n all_o the_o glory_n of_o king_n and_o kingdom_n ought_v to_o serve_v god_n by_o judge_v righteous_o by_o countenance_v the_o faithful_a of_o the_o land_n and_o not_o suffer_v the_o wicked_a to_o influence_n their_o council_n and_o by_o walk_v wise_o in_o a_o perfect_a way_n and_o by_o hate_v the_o work_n of_o they_o that_o turn_v aside_o and_o by_o not_o suffer_v those_o that_o have_v high_a look_n and_o proud_a thought_n as_o be_v make_v choice_n of_o by_o he_o to_o administer_v in_o his_o kingdom_n as_o nursing-fathers_n of_o his_o people_n isaiah_n 49._o 23._o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o who_o set_v up_o king_n and_o remove_v they_o do_v only_o love_v the_o principality_n and_o kingdom_n of_o his_o own_o eternity_n and_o himself_o continual_o add_v to_o the_o glory_n and_o enlargement_n thereof_o but_o will_v and_o expect_v the_o same_o from_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o governor_n of_o temporal_a sceptre_n to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o that_o under_o severe_a menace_n and_o penalty_n whatever_o therefore_o of_o enlargement_n glory_n stability_n the_o cark_n care_n or_o design_n of_o the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o earth_n may_v project_v and_o promise_v to_o themselves_o by_o be_v king_n and_o prince_n on_o the_o earth_n they_o be_v all_o but_o magnificum_fw-la nihil_fw-la toy_n gewgaw_n and_o vanity_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n when_o put_v into_o the_o balance_n with_o that_o kingdom_n which_o christ_n alone_o love_v respect_v and_o desire_v and_o unto_o which_o unless_o they_o be_v hearty_o subservient_fw-fr to_o serve_v and_o enlarge_v the_o kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o shall_v become_v like_o the_o chaff_n of_o the_o summer_n threshing-floor_n and_o the_o wind_n shall_v carry_v they_o away_o and_o the_o god_n of_o god_n and_o lord_n of_o king_n shall_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v and_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v to_o other_o people_n but_o it_o shall_v break_v in_o piece_n all_o other_o kingdom_n and_o it_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o dan._n 2._o 44_o 45_o 47._o if_o king_n will_v not_o kiss_v the_o son_n nor_o do_v their_o duty_n in_o purge_v the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v not_o eliah_n and_o the_o people_n do_v their_o duty_n and_o cast_v out_o baal_n be_v priest_n reformation_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o personal_a act_n that_o belong_v to_o all_o even_o to_o every_o private_a person_n according_a to_o his_o place_n they_o may_v swear_v a_o covenant_n without_o the_o king_n if_o he_o refuse_v and_o build_v the_o lord_n house_n themselves_o 2_o chr._n 15._o 9_o and_o relieve_v and_o defend_v one_o another_o if_o oppress_v for_o our_o act_n and_o duty_n of_o defend_v ourselves_o and_o the_o oppress_a do_v not_o tie_v our_o conscience_n conditional_o so_o the_o king_n consent_n but_o absolute_o as_o all_o duty_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n do_v jer._n 22._o 3._o prov._n 24._o 11._o isaiah_n 1._o 17._o &_o 58._o 6._o be_v wise_a now_o therefore_o o_o you_o king_n be_v instruct_v you_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n and_o rejoice_v with_o tremble_a kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o you_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n be_v kindle_v but_o a_o little_a bless_a be_v all_o they_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o psalm_n 2._o therefore_o it_o become_v you_o that_o sit_v upon_o throne_n to_o observe_v and_o obey_v the_o true_a unquestionable_a divine_a lex_fw-la regius_fw-la to_o you_o it_o be_v command_v deut._n 17._o 18_o 19_o 20._o viz._n to_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n all_o the_o day_n of_o your_o life_n that_o you_o may_v learn_v to_o fear_v the_o lord_n your_o god_n to_o keep_v all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o statute_n to_o do_v they_o that_o your_o heart_n be_v not_o lift_v up_o above_o your_o brethren_n by_o who_o and_o from_o among_o who_o you_o yourselves_o be_v choose_v and_o set_v in_o great_a glory_n honour_n and_o dignity_n to_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o judge_v righteous_o and_o that_o you_o turn_v not_o aside_o from_o the_o commandment_n to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a do_v violence_n to_o no_o man_n for_o god_n hate_v the_o violent_a man_n and_o evil_a shall_v hunt_v the_o violent_a man_n to_o overthrow_v he_o psalm_n 140._o 11._o be_v content_n with_o your_o tribute_n and_o exact_v no_o more_o than_o what_o be_v appoint_v you_o by_o public_a consent_n take_v care_n that_o there_o be_v no_o violent_a pervert_n of_o judgement_n no_o sham_v of_o
may_v learn_v wisdom_n and_o not_o fall_v away_o wisd_v chap._n 1._o ver_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o the_o right_n of_o government_n and_o justification_n of_o defensive_a arm_n etc._n etc._n though_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o so_o exact_o so_o accurate_o so_o cautious_o write_v that_o prevaricate_a and_o search_a wit_n and_o man_n of_o different_a principle_n and_o different_a interest_n who_o take_v and_o measure_v only_o by_o their_o own_o plummet_n and_o their_o own_o line_n will_v not_o quarrel_v and_o throw_v stone_n at_o when_o sound_a reason_n and_o solid_a argument_n be_v want_v to_o refute_v yet_o i_o presume_v to_o expose_v my_o sentiment_n concern_v government_n and_o governor_n and_o to_o run_v the_o same_o fortune_n and_o risk_a with_o other_o not_o vain_o expect_v to_o pass_v current_o without_o snap_n and_o snarl_v lay_v a_o very_a short_a but_o firm_a foundation_n as_o a_o solid_a rock_n able_a to_o bear_v and_o justify_v all_o the_o superstructure_n which_o i_o shall_v build_v thereon_o relate_v to_o any_o form_n of_o government_n whatsoever_o thereby_o avoid_v multiplicity_n and_o minister_a less_o occasion_n of_o dispute_n and_o less_o fuel_n to_o kindle_v the_o fire_n of_o contention_n and_o less_o scope_n to_o pick_v and_o make_v dispute_n and_o quarrel_n upon_o i_o shall_v not_o particular_o meddle_v with_o the_o several_a form_n of_o government_n nor_o how_o right_o or_o abusive_o exercise_v in_o any_o nation_n state_n or_o kingdom_n but_o shall_v endeavour_v quantum_fw-la in_o i_o to_o set_v the_o right_n of_o governor_n and_o government_n on_o a_o right_a foundation_n in_o general_n without_o respect_n to_o this_o or_o that_o form_n or_o to_o this_o or_o that_o nation_n commonwealth_n or_o kingdom_n and_o without_o particular_a reflection_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a unless_o by_o way_n of_o instance_n on_o any_o particular_a kingdom_n or_o commonwealth_n chap._n i._n show_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o government_n of_o what_o nature_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o how_o governor_n ought_v to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o the_o management_n thereof_o to_o what_o governor_n obedience_n be_v due_a i_o shall_v first_o show_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o friendly_a assotiation_n and_o government_n second_o of_o what_o nature_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v three_o who_o of_o right_n have_v the_o power_n of_o government_n it_o be_v a_o maxim_n most_o christian_n a_o undeniable_a that_o pure_a religion_n and_o undefiled_a holiness_n of_o life_n and_o conversation_n be_v every_o man_n bind_a duty_n in_o particular_a and_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v the_o high_a of_o all_o the_o care_n and_o concern_v of_o all_o public_a and_o private_a governor_n and_o government_n in_o many_o respect_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o gratitude_n towards_o god_n who_o have_v do_v so_o great_a thing_n for_o we_o man_n and_o for_o the_o eternal_a welfare_n of_o our_o immortal_a soul_n and_o who_o give_v to_o all_o man_n liberal_o and_o upbraid_v not_o and_o not_o only_o for_o necessity_n but_o for_o delight_v also_o 2._o in_o respect_n of_o his_o almighty_a power_n who_o be_v lord_n alone_o of_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o please_v in_o heaven_n above_o and_o in_o earth_n beneath_o and_o in_o the_o great_a water_n 3._o in_o respect_v that_o righteousness_n and_o judgement_n be_v the_o habitation_n of_o his_o throne_n psalm_n 97._o 2._o and_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n with_o righteousness_n and_o all_o person_n with_o his_o truth_n and_o who_o only_o can_v give_v peace_n within_o our_o wall_n and_o plentiousness_n within_o our_o palace_n but_o that_o only_a hypothetical_o on_o condition_n that_o our_o way_n do_v please_v he_o 4._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o great_a power_n religion_n have_v to_o qualify_v all_o unnatural_a exorbitant_a humour_n and_o passion_n of_o man_n even_o most_o rebellious_a against_o god_n or_o man_n and_o to_o incline_v all_o governor_n to_o rule_n with_o conscience_n and_o the_o govern_v to_o obey_v for_o conscience_n sake_n it_o be_v no_o fanatic_a whim_n but_o a_o matter_n of_o ●ound_n and_o undeniable_a consequence_n that_o all_o duty_n both_o of_o the_o governor_n and_o govern_v be_v by_o so_o much_o the_o better_o execute_v by_o how_o much_o they_o be_v the_o more_o religious_a for_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o good_a government_n can_v continue_v without_o good_a governor_n which_o be_v most_o certain_o true_a policy_n must_v submit_v and_o be_v subordinate_a and_o d●_n homage_n to_o religion_n this_o be_v more_o demonstrable_a in_o that_o all_o good_a christian_n do_v own_o these_o very_a truth_n in_o their_o very_a prayer_n to_o which_o the_o several_a liturgy_n of_o several_a nation_n give_v abundant_a undeniable_a testimony_n beside_o they_o have_v god_n own_o command_n and_o own_o pattern_n for_o such_o government_n and_o governor_n viz._n h●_n that_o rule_v over_o man_n must_v be_v just_a rule_v in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n 2._o sam._n 23._o 3._o before_o the_o israelite_n god_n own_a peculiar_a people_n for_o who_o god_n have_v do_v so_o much_o and_o show_v so_o many_o miracle_n by_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n by_o a_o strong_a hand_n enter_v that_o good_a land_n beyond_o jordan_n he_o teach_v they_o by_o his_o servant_n moses_n law_n statute_n and_o judgement_n to_o govern_v themselves_o by_o say_v behold_v i_o have_v teach_v you_o statute_n and_o judgement_n even_o as_o the_o lord_n my_o god_n command_v i_o that_o you_o shall_v do_v so_o in_o the_o land_n whether_o you_o go_v to_o possess_v it_o keep_v therefore_o and_o do_v they_o for_o this_o be_v your_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o nation_n which_o shall_v hear_v all_o these_o statute_n and_o say_v sure_o this_o great_a nation_n be_v a_o wise_a and_o understand_a people_n for_o what_o nation_n be_v there_o so_o great_a who_o have_v god_n so_o nigh_o unto_o they_o as_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o call_v unto_o he_o for_o and_o what_o nation_n be_v there_o so_o great_a that_o have_v statute_n and_o judgement_n so_o righteous_a as_o all_o this_o law_n which_o i_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o only_o take_v heed_n to_o thyself_o and_o keep_v thy_o soul_n diligent_o and_o teach_v they_o thy_o son_n and_o thy_o son_n son_n etc._n etc._n what_o human_a oracle_n can_v contrive_v and_o dictate_v better_a law_n statute_n and_o judgement_n than_o be_v command_v in_o holy_a writ_n and_o therefore_o great_a prudence_n and_o safety_n to_o make_v they_o their_o pattern_n but_o we_o have_v not_o only_o divine_a but_o human_a sanction_n also_o for_o what_o be_v aver_v that_o great_a prince_n augustus_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o religion_n do_v deify_v prince_n and_o tully_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o roman_a state_n do_v increase_v and_o flourish_v more_o by_o religion_n than_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n all_o the_o law_n of_o solon_n and_o lycurge_n of_o greece_n and_o rome_n etc._n etc._n come_v far_o short_a of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o the_o most_o pure_a just_a and_o excellent_a government_n and_o whoever_o shall_v consult_v the_o ancient_n of_o the_o very_a heathen_n themselves_o as_o plato_n aristotle_n cicero_n and_o other_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o all_o centre_n be_v the_o form_n of_o government_n what_o it_o will_v in_o just_a law_n and_o just_a execution_n without_o create_v subtlety_n or_o coin_v evasion_n to_o shame_n good_a law_n make_v in_o simplicity_n and_o in_o sincerity_n thus_o by_o testimony_n both_o divine_a and_o human_a religion_n be_v the_o best_a and_o sure_a basis_n of_o human_a society_n union_n peace_n liberty_n plenty_n and_o distributive_a justice_n to_o all_o indifferent_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n high_a or_o low_o rich_a or_o poor_a consider_v also_o what_o edward_n i._n have_v leave_v as_o a_o pattern_n of_o good_a government_n concern_v the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n rex_fw-la autem_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o king_n because_o he_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o the_o great_a god_n be_v ordain_v to_o this_o that_o above_o all_o he_o shall_v reverence_v holy_a church_n that_o he_o shall_v govern_v the_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o people_n of_o god_n and_o defend_v they_o from_o injury_n and_o shall_v discountenance_v and_o dispel_v all_o lewd_a people_n out_o of_o church_n and_o state_n which_o if_o he_o do_v not_o the_o name_n of_o king_n remain_v not_o in_o he_o but_o pope_n john_n testify_v he_o lose_v the_o name_n of_o king_n to_o who_o pepin_n and_o charles_n his_o son_n not_o yet_o king_n but_o prince_n under_o the_o french_a king_n write_v foolish_o complain_v that_o if_o so_o the_o king_n of_o france_n ought_v to_o be_v content_a with_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o king_n by_o who_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o be_v call_v king_n
who_o careful_o defend_v and_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o people_n of_o god_n imitate_v david_n king_n of_o israel_n psalm_n 101._o he_o that_o work_v deceit_n shall_v not_o dwell_v within_o my_o house_n he_o that_o tell_v lie_n shall_v not_o tarry_v in_o my_o sight_n i_o will_v early_o destroy_v all_o the_o wicked_a of_o the_o land_n that_o i_o may_v cut_v off_o all_o wicked_a doer_n from_o the_o city_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n the_o king_n ought_v in_o all_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n full_o and_o whole_o to_o observe_v all_o the_o dignity_n right_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o their_o pristine_a condition_n the_o king_n also_o ought_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o his_o kingdom_n righteous_o and_o that_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o noble_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o right_o and_o justice_n ought_v rather_o to_o bear_v rule_n in_o a_o kingdom_n than_o sinful_a will_n and_o pleasure_n law_n be_v always_o that_o which_o do_v right_a but_o will_v and_o pleasure_n be_v violence_n and_o force_n be_v not_o right_a and_o much_o more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n by_o edward_n the_o first_o to_o who_o law_n also_o william_n the_o conqueror_n subscribe_v vid._n lambert_n collect_v p._n 142._o n_o o_fw-mi 17._o the_o true_a religion_n of_o god_n and_o honest_a conversation_n even_o of_o priest_n themselves_o be_v our_o chief_a care_n say_v justinian_n novel_a constit_fw-la 6._o the_o search_n of_o true_a religion_n we_o find_v to_o be_v the_o chief_a care_n of_o imperial_a majesty_n legum_n theodos_n novel_a tit_n 2._o the_o judaeis_n &_o samaritanis_fw-la so_o gregory_n the_o great_a earnest_o exhort_v edelbert_n unto_o the_o first_o that_o be_v christen_v of_o the_o saxon_a king_n in_o england_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o almighty_a god_n bring_v the_o good_a prince_n to_o the_o regiment_n of_o his_o people_n that_o by_o they_o he_o may_v bestow_v the_o gift_n of_o his_o mercy_n upon_o all_o that_o be_v under_o they_o beda_n hist_o aug._n 32._o consider_v in_o the_o creation_n we_o be_v all_o create_v in_o adam_n equal_a and_o equal_o innocent_a and_o upright_o and_o have_v we_o so_o continue_v in_o that_o state_n of_o innocency_n there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o empery_n one_o over_o another_o every_o one_o will_v have_v be_v a_o king_n to_o himself_o god_n and_o nature_n their_o only_a lawgiver_n but_o lapse_v man_n seek_v out_o many_o invention_n and_o break_v the_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o thereby_o provoke_v god_n to_o anger_n and_o to_o vengeance_n and_o instead_o of_o be_v homo_fw-la homini_fw-la deus_fw-la as_o in_o their_o fist_n creation_n and_o state_n of_o innocency_n they_o soon_o become_v homo_fw-la homini_fw-la lupus_fw-la which_o unavoidable_o introduce_v a_o necessity_n of_o government_n frame_v by_o human_a wisdom_n that_o they_o may_v not_o like_a brute_n devour_v one_o another_o but_o live_v in_o unity_n wealth_n peace_n and_o godliness_n that_o they_o may_v have_v liberty_n preserve_v justice_n equal_o distribute●_n honesty_n uphold_v religion_n and_o piety_n maintain_v and_o propagate_v all_o which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v when_o the_o race_n of_o lapse_v mankind_n be_v multiply_v but_o by_o law_n ordain_v by_o common_a consent_n as_o sociable_a part_n unite_v into_o one_o body_n which_o law_n in_o common_a prudence_n and_o of_o right_a do_v bind_v each_o to_o serve_v other_o and_o all_o to_o prefer_v the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a before_o what_o good_a soever_o of_o any_o particular_a without_o which_o no_o house_n no_o city_n no_o nation_n can_v long_o subsist_v in_o any_o happy_a condition_n for_o to_o govern_v and_o to_o be_v govern_v be_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v among_o thing_n only_o necessary_a but_o as_o thing_n profitable_a also_o for_o the_o benefit_n and_o solace_n of_o all_o mankind_n and_o have_v its_o ground_n and_o warrant_v in_o scripture_n in_o nature_n in_o heaven_n hell_n the_o creature_n man_n nature_n and_o conscience_n in_o scripture_n by_o i_o king_n and_o consequent_o all_o other_o form_n of_o government_n reign_n and_o prince_n decree_v justice_n by_o i_o prince_n rule_v and_o noble_n even_o all_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n pro._n 8._o 15_o 16._o say_v god_n essential_a wisdom_n viz._n not_o only_o by_o the_o secret_a disposition_n of_o his_o providence_n but_o by_o the_o express_a warrant_n of_o his_o ordinance_n by_o divine_a institution_n not_o by_o naked_a approbation_n there_o be_v no_o power_n but_o of_o god_n either_o by_o his_o commission_n or_o permission_n the_o power_n that_o be_v i._n e._n the_o several_a form_n of_o government_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n rom._n 13._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o i_o e._n politic_a power_n in_o general_n be_v warrant_v by_o a_o divine_a law_n but_o the_o several_a form_n of_o government_n be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n princedom_n empire_n kingdom_n and_o jurisdiction_n have_v their_o rise_n from_o a_o positive_a and_o secondary_a law_n of_o nation_n and_o not_o absolute_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o of_o pure_a nature_n which_o the_o lawyer_n call_v secundariò_fw-la jus_fw-la naturale_fw-la or_o jus_fw-la gentium_fw-la secundarium_fw-la in_o sum_n government_n be_v immediate_o from_o god_n but_o this_o or_o that_o form_n of_o government_n be_v immediate_o from_o god_n by_o the_o interposition_n and_o mediation_n of_o the_o public_a consent_n of_o kingdom_n and_o state_n and_o so_o the_o application_n of_o the_o person_n to_o the_o office_n be_v whole_o in_o the_o govern_v the_o several_a form_n of_o government_n differ_v not_o in_o nature_n moral_o and_o theological_o speak_v the_o end_n of_o all_o government_n be_v the_o very_a self_n same_o but_o only_o political_o and_o positive_o for_o god_n appoint_v not_o king_n absolute_a and_o sole_o independent_a but_o constitute_v with_o they_o also_o judge_n who_o be_v equal_o oblige_v to_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god._n 2._o chron._n 19_o 6._o as_o king_n 17._o deut._n 15._o and_o have_v a_o coordinate_a share_n in_o the_o government_n because_o the_o judgement_n be_v neither_o the_o king_n nor_o the_o judge_n but_o the_o lord_n and_o both_o their_o conscience_n be_v in_o immediate_a subjection_n to_o the_o king_n of_o king_n 2_o chron._n 19_o 6_o 7._o the_o person_n be_v sometime_o usurper_n sometime_o abuser_n of_o their_o authority_n as_o when_o they_o tyrannize_v or_o oppress_v such_o power_n god_n own_v not_o the_o ruler_n that_o he_o ordain_v be_v not_o to_o be_v a_o terror_n unto_o good_a work_n but_o to_o the_o evil_a for_o they_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o the_o govern_v for_o good_a revenger_n to_o execute_v wrath_n upon_o they_o that_o do_v evil_a to_o such_o ruler_n we_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_n not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n therefore_o whosoever_o resist_v such_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n pay_v we_o tribute_n but_o not_o to_o those_o that_o be_v a_o terror_n to_o good_a work_n the_o reason_n subjoin_v be_v for_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n attend_v continual_o on_o this_o very_a thing_n but_o if_o they_o attend_v not_o continual_o on_o this_o very_a thing_n there_o be_v no_o absolute_a necessary_a obligation_n express_v incumbent_a upon_o we_o for_o our_o obedience_n or_o for_o our_o pay_v of_o tribute_n suit_n or_o service_n but_o rather_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n act_v 5._o 29._o the_o same_o power_n st._n peter_n term_v human_a ordinance_n submit_v yourself_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a or_o unto_o governor_n as_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v send_v by_o he_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil_a doer_n and_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 13_o 14._o so_o that_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n peter_n run_v parallel_n to_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o sense_n and_o the_o sword_n in_o the_o magistrate_n hand_n to_o revenge_n be_v not_o a_o material_a sword_n to_o hack_v and_o hew_v kill_v and_o slay_v at_o pleasure_n but_o the_o law_n make_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n be_v the_o true_a sword_n so_o bishop_n bilson_n to_o which_o both_o magistrate_n and_o people_n be_v equal_o oblige_v to_o submit_v the_o magistrate_n be_v but_o the_o conduit_n and_o pipe_n the_o administrator_n not_o patron_n of_o the_o power_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o order_n through_o which_o and_o by_o who_o all_o law_n be_v to_o pass_v and_o be_v execute_v and_o by_o the_o same_o text_n they_o have_v the_o like_a obligation_n to_o praise_v they_o that_o do_v well_o as_o to_o punish_v those_o that_o do_v ill_a so_o david_n be_v teach_v and_o practise_v i_o will_v not_o know_v a_o wicked_a person_n my_o eye_n
he_o break_v his_o covenant_n god_n become_v free_a and_o discharge_v of_o his_o promise_n and_o rend_v his_o kingdom_n from_o he_o the_o same_o jeroboam_n erect_v tw●_n calf_n in_o dan_n and_o bethel_n become_v ●in_v unto_o the_o house_n of_o jeroboam_n even_o to_o cut_v it_o off_o and_o be_v first_o punish_v by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n and_o then_o destroy_v it_o from_o off_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n 1_o king_n 13._o 34._o and_o why_o because_o they_o keep_v not_o god_n covenant_n the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o such_o example_n of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o judah_n as_o the_o gospel_n succeed_v the_o law_n so_o king_n christian_n be_v in_o the_o place_n and_o stead_n of_o jewish_a king_n and_o be_v under_o the_o same_o covenant_n the_o same_o pact_n and_o the_o same_o punishment_n and_o the_o same_o god_n be_v the_o same_o revenger_n of_o all_o perjury_n and_o perfidiousness_n and_o covenant-breaking_a as_o the_o jewish_a king_n be_v strict_o oblige_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n so_o king_n christian_a to_o the_o observation_n and_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o which_o they_o swear_v at_o their_o inauguration_n herod_n who_o ought_v to_o have_v advance_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n fear_v christ_n himself_o as_o a_o competitor_n for_o his_o kingdom_n condemn_v he_o to_o death_n behold_v how_o soon_o he_o miserable_o perish_v and_o lose_v his_o kingdom_n how_o soon_o be_v julian_n the_o apostate_n in_o despite_n of_o all_o his_o obstinacy_n and_o perverseness_n bring_v to_o his_o scornful_a exclamation_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o vicisti_fw-la galilae_fw-la history_n both_o sacred_a and_o profane_a old_a and_o new_a be_v full_a of_o such_o fearful_a example_n which_o may_v teach_v all_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o though_o they_o set_v themselves_o and_o the_o ruler_n take_v counsel_n together_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o against_o his_o anointed_n which_o be_v his_o people_n psalm_n 105._o 14_o 15._o yet_o he_o that_o sit_v in_o the_o heaven_n shall_v laugh_v they_o to_o scorn_v and_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v they_o in_o derision_n and_o in_o his_o due_a time_n shall_v break_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n and_o shall_v dash_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n and_o make_v all_o their_o enemy_n their_o foot-stool_n psal_n 2._o &_o 100_o and_o they_o shall_v confess_v the_o lamb_n christ_n jesus_n to_o be_v king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o that_o they_o that_o be_v with_o he_o to_o be_v the_o choose_a and_o faithful_a rev._n 17._o 14._o it_o be_v wonderful_a and_o ineffable_a to_o consider_v that_o the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o earth_n do_v not_o create_v man_n only_o a_o little_a low_o than_o the_o angel_n and_o in_o his_o own_o image_n and_o give_v they_o also_o dominion_n over_o the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o over_o the_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n and_o over_o the_o cattle_n and_o over_o every_o live_a thing_n that_o move_v upon_o the_o earth_n gen._n 1._o 26._o but_o such_o be_v his_o admirable_a love_n to_o mankind_n that_o he_o have_v in_o some_o measure_n give_v he_o a_o share_n and_o part_n with_o himself_o in_o the_o external_n and_o worldly_n administration_n and_o government_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o the_o thing_n below_o in_o direct_v they_o to_o a_o government_n according_a to_o his_o own_o pattern_n display_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o give_v they_o law_n to_o govern_v themselves_o and_o honour_n and_o dignify_v they_o with_o the_o title_n of_o his_o own_o lieutenant_n and_o vicegerent_n nay_o of_o god_n i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n etc._n etc._n psalm_n 82._o 6_o 7._o viz._n by_o i_o king_n reign_n and_o prince_n decree_v justice_n prov._n 8._o 15_o 16._o who_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o since_o have_v leave_v they_o unto_o their_o own_o free_a choice_n and_o discretion_n still_o observe_v his_o law_n and_o command_n against_o which_o no_o law_n can_v have_v force_n and_o god_n himself_o remember_v his_o covenant_n the_o word_n which_o he_o swear_v to_o a_o thousand_o generation_n become_v a_o pattern_n to_o all_o his_o succeed_a vicar_n and_o vicegerent_n to_o imitate_v when_o he_o send_v joseph_n before_o he_o into_o egypt_n in_o his_o due_a time_n to_o bind_v prince_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o teach_v his_o senator_n wisdom_n when_o he_o send_v moses_n his_o servant_n and_o aaron_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o hector_n proud_a pharaoh_n king_n of_o egypt_n and_o bring_v out_o his_o people_n israel_n with_o a_o high_a hand_n and_o stretch_v out_o arm_n and_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o the_o iron_n furnace_n and_o egyptian_a bondage_n reprove_v king_n for_o their_o sake_n say_v touch_v not_o my_o anoint_v and_o do_v my_o prophet_n no_o harm_n when_o he_o lead_v they_o through_o the_o wilderness_n by_o spread_v a_o cloud_n for_o their_o cover_n and_o fire_n to_o give_v light_n in_o the_o night_n when_o he_o make_v the_o red_a sea_n a_o wall_n unto_o they_o on_o their_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o their_o left_a and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n overthrow_v pharaoh_n and_o all_o his_o host_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o same_o so_o that_o there_o remain_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o they_o but_o bring_v israel_n forth_o with_o gold_n and_o with_o silver_n and_o not_o one_o feeble_a person_n among_o their_o tribe_n and_o give_v they_o the_o land_n of_o the_o heathen_a for_o their_o inheritance_n and_o uttermost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o their_o possession_n of_o such_o vast_a and_o near_a consequence_n and_o concern_v be_v the_o happiness_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n though_o a_o rebellious_a generation_n unto_o god_n himself_o that_o he_o use_v ●his_v almighty_a power_n and_o wrought_v miracle_n after_o miracle_n rather_o than_o not_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o enemy_n and_o cruel_a bondage_n a_o notable_a document_n to_o all_o christian_a king_n who_o pride_n themselves_o and_o glory_n in_o be_v style_v and_o esteem_v his_o vicegerent_n to_o imitate_v god_n and_o his_o vicegerent_n moses_n in_o all_o their_o government_n in_o keep_v covenant_n and_o be_v in_o good_a earnest_a nursing-fathers_n to_o the_o govern_v and_o carry_v they_o in_o their_o bosom_n as_o nursing-fathers_n bear_n their_o suck_a child_n and_o not_o vex_v they_o with_o their_o wyles_n nor_o yet_o with_o any_o oppression_n or_o tyranny_n chap._n iii_o the_o true_a basis_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o government_n and_o right_a of_o legislation_n be_v consent_n of_o party_n who_o may_v delegate_v and_o devolve_v the_o use_n of_o their_o own_o power_n on_o one_o or_o more_o person_n without_o divest_v themselves_o of_o the_o supreme_a dominion_n thereof_o and_o that_o common_a good_a be_v the_o main_a end_n of_o all_o government_n king_n make_v by_o the_o people_n these_o thing_n thus_o premise_v i_o lay_v this_o for_o a_o undeniable_a truth_n as_o the_o basis_n of_o all_o true_a government_n viz._n that_o paternal_a government_n except_v to_o which_o within_o their_o own_o private_a family_n nature_n have_v give_v a_o supreme_a power_n throughout_o the_o world_n even_o from_o the_o first_o creation_n thereof_o and_o have_v ever_o be_v repute_v as_o lawful_a governor_n therein_o no_o man_n nor_o any_o number_n of_o man_n can_v have_v complete_a lawful_a power_n or_o authority_n over_o any_o number_n of_o society_n of_o man_n but_o by_o consent_n of_o man_n or_o by_o immediate_a appointment_n of_o god_n which_o position_n will_v justice_n all_o subsequent_a superstructure_n all_o other_o government_n be_v unnatural_a violent_a and_o usurp_v and_o therefore_o unlawful_a whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o whole_a right_n and_o power_n of_o government_n be_v original_o in_o the_o govern_v who_o may_v transfer_v and_o vest_n as_o much_o of_o their_o own_o power_n as_o they_o please_v on_o one_o or_o more_o governor_n without_o divest_v themselves_o absolute_o of_o the_o supreme_a dominion_n thereof_o which_o still_o remain_v virtual_o in_o they_o they_o delegate_a the_n use_v only_o not_o the_o patronage_n and_o dominion_n of_o their_o own_o power_n for_o the_o better_a execution_n administration_n and_o regulation_n of_o those_o law_n which_o by_o common_a consent_n they_o shall_v make_v and_o choose_v for_o the_o sake_n of_o justice_n peace_n order_n and_o piety_n common_a good_a be_v the_o main_a end_n for_o which_o society_n and_o government_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n and_o man_n and_o without_o they_o tend_v unto_o that_o end_n they_o be_v not_o perfect_a and_o in_o all_o such_o delegation_n salus_fw-la populi_fw-la the_o good_a of_o the_o govern_v be_v and_o so_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o supreme_a law_n and_o be_v always_o so_o express_v or_o employ_v and_o so_o to_o be_v undertake_v and_o understand_v this_o
be_v so_o natural_a a_o obligation_n that_o it_o can_v be_v dispense_v with_o and_o for_o governor_n to_o procure_v the_o good_a of_o commonweal_n be_v but_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n he_o that_o be_v above_o all_o shall_v be_v best_a of_o all_o for_o example_n prevail_v more_o than_o law_n and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n for_o sin_n violence_n or_o oppression_n prince_n council_n love_n and_o hate_v must_v do_v homage_n to_o the_o law_n of_o state_n the_o people_n safety_n have_v no_o mate_n so_o king_n james_n of_o happy_a memory_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n 1603._o when_o i_o have_v do_v all_o that_o i_o can_v for_o you_o i_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o i_o be_o bind_v to_o do_v and_o be_o accountable_a to_o god_n upon_o the_o contrary_n for_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o special_a and_o great_a point_n of_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o a_o rightful_a king_n and_o a_o usurp_a tyrant_n be_v in_o this_o that_o whereas_o the_o proud_a and_o ambitious_a tyrant_n do_v think_v his_o kingdom_n and_o people_n be_v only_o ordain_v for_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o desire_n and_o unreasonable_a appetite_n the_o righteous_a and_o just_a king_n do_v by_o the_o contrary_n acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o procure_n of_o the_o wealth_n and_o prosperity_n of_o his_o people_n and_o that_o his_o great_a and_o principle_n worldly_n felicity_n must_v consist_v in_o their_o prosperity_n if_o you_o be_v rich_a i_o can_v be_v poor_a if_o you_o be_v happy_a i_o can_v but_o be_v fortunate_a and_o i_o protest_v that_o your_o welfare_n shall_v ever_o be_v my_o great_a care_n and_o contentment_n and_o that_o i_o be_o a_o servant_n it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o as_o i_o be_o head_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o people_n in_o my_o dominion_n who_o be_v my_o natural_a vassal_n and_o subject_n consider_v they_o in_o number_n and_o distinct_a rank_n so_o if_o we_o will_v take_v the_o whole_a people_n as_o one_o body_n and_o mass_n then_o as_o the_o head_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o body_n and_o not_o the_o body_n for_o the_o head_n so_o must_v a_o righteous_a king_n know_v himself_o to_o be_v ordain_v for_o his_o people_n and_o not_o his_o people_n for_o he_o for_o though_o a_o king_n and_o people_n be_v relata_fw-la yet_o there_o can_v be_v no_o king_n if_o he_o want_v people_n and_o subject_n but_o there_o be_v many_o people_n in_o the_o world_n that_o lack_v a_o head_n wherefore_o i_o will_v never_o be_v ashamed_a to_o confess_v it_o my_o principal_a honour_n to_o be_v the_o great_a servant_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o ever_o think_v the_o prosperity_n thereof_o to_o be_v my_o great_a felicity_n 494_o 495._o the_o reason_n be_v demonstrable_a viz._n god_n not_o the_o king_n make_v the_o people_n and_o those_o all_o equal_o of_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a mould_n but_o the_o people_n make_v king_n nature_n be_v father_n to_o the_o people_n but_o the_o people_n make_v some_o of_o themselves_o king_n and_o be_v the_o rightful_a patron_n of_o all_o their_o power_n honour_n privilege_n and_o prerogative_n and_o therefore_o as_o god_n ordain_v the_o sabbath_n for_o man_n and_o not_o man_n for_o the_o sabbath_n mark_v 2._o 27_o so_o 〈◊〉_d ordain_v king_n and_o all_o other_o governor_n and_o government_n for_o 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o man_n for_o king_n the_o prospect_n and_o foresight_n of_o the_o wise_a that_o to_o be_v govern_v by_o one_o man_n will_n may_v become_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o man_n misery_n prevail_v with_o they_o 〈…〉_z and_o 〈…〉_z law_n 〈◊〉_d all_o may_v see_v their_o duty_n and_o 〈…〉_z there_o be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d with_o great_a 〈…〉_z truth_n that_o king_n receive_v their_o 〈…〉_z according_a to_o prov._n 8._o 15._o and_o not_o from_o the_o 〈…〉_z be_v set_v and_o that_o they_o be_v accountable_a to_o non●_n bu●_n 〈…〉_z on_o the_o just_a right_n of_o all_o pol●●●●k_a power_n 〈…〉_z and_o of_o nature_n and_o of_o reason_n be_v original_o in_o the_o 〈…〉_z use_v thereof_o from_o they_o may_v be_v transfer_v and_o deligate_v unto_o who_o 〈…〉_z divest_v 〈…〉_z their_o administrator●_n 〈…〉_z they_o who_o deligate_v it_o and_o to_o 〈…〉_z countable_a if_o such_o ass●●tor●_n 〈…〉_z old_a when_o god_n by_o 〈…〉_z the_o people_n have_v 〈…〉_z prophet_n for_o rule_n 〈…〉_z much_o more_o may_v have_v 〈…〉_z yet_o even_o in_o those_o day_n the_o 〈…〉_z far_o comply_v with_o common_a consent_n 〈…〉_z change_v of_o that_o government_n his_o own_o wisdom_n 〈…〉_z he_o and_o his_o government_n 〈…〉_z his_o peculiar_a people_n only_o because_o they_o 〈…〉_z king_n over_o we_o maugre_o all_o that_o samuel_n can_v 〈…〉_z as_o solomon_n was_z dead_a all_o israel_n come_v 〈…〉_z king_n who_o refuse_v to_o be_v a_o servant_n to_o the●_n 〈…〉_z for_o ever_o threaten_v that_o his_o little_a finger_n shall_v be_v 〈…〉_z will_v whip_v they_o with_o scorpion_n etc._n etc._n they_o soon_o 〈…〉_z have_v we_o in_o david_n neither_o have_v we_o inheritance_n in_o the_o 〈…〉_z and_o see_v to_o thy_o house_n david_n 1_o king_n 12._o and_o then_o choose_v 〈…〉_z rehoboam_n the_o son_n of_o solomon_n but_o such_o choice_n be_v now_o quite_o out_o of_o door_n and_o 〈…〉_z the_o least_o pretence_n of_o title_n from_o such_o nomination_n and_o therefore_o 〈…〉_z can_v only_o be_v mean_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o office_n and_o not_o the_o designation_n 〈…〉_z and_o can_v possible_o be_v understand_v any_o other_o way_n 〈…〉_z institute_v have_v together_o with_o other_o government_n th●_n 〈…〉_z and_o it_o stand_v sure_a that_o all_o royal_a power_n 〈…〉_z in_o the_o people_n as_o in_o the_o first_o subject_n which_o they_o may_v confer_v on_o this_o or_o that_o man_n with_o ●●at_a imitation_n they_o please_v and_o on_o condition_n that_o if_o condition_n be_v not_o perform_v they_o 〈…〉_z power_n they_o entrust_v he_o withal_o and_o therefore_o no_o king_n can_v have_v 〈…〉_z so_o just_a power_n as_o from_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n all_o other_o government_n 〈…〉_z tyranny_n and_o continue_a injury_n of_o which_o the_o people_n may_v ease_v themselves_o when_o they_o have_v just_a reason_n and_o a_o neat_a opportunity_n so_o to_o do_v because_o their_o just_a and_o natural_a right_n be_v wrongful_o invade_v for_o that_o natural_o no_o sort_n of_o man_n have_v full_a and_o lawful_a power_n to_o command_v whole_a politic_a multitude_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o utter_o without_o the_o people_n consent_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v at_o any_o man_n commandment_n live_v this_o be_v plain_a and_o natural_a reason_n and_o aught_o to_o have_v the_o stamp_n of_o a_o public_a law._n law_n positive_a be_v mutable_a natural_o not_o so_o and_o therefore_o these_o law_n ought_v to_o stand_v unrepealed_a because_o they_o always_o bind_v the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o jud●●_n be_v not_o so_o immediate_o and_o absolute_o from_o god_n as_o that_o the_o people_n be_v 〈…〉_z exclude_v from_o their_o right_n and_o power_n of_o elect_v and_o approve_v and_o 〈…〉_z of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v to_o deprive_v they_o of_o that_o power_n that_o god_n and_o the_o 〈…〉_z nature_n have_v give_v they_o to_o covenant_n and_o agree_v with_o they_o before_o they_o will_v admit_v of_o they_o that_o have_v be_v to_o wrong_v the_o people_n and_o to_o bind_v they_o up_o from_o the_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n by_o covenant_v for_o their_o own_o happiness_n and_o against_o tyranny_n in_o ease_n they_o shall_v break_v law_n and_o covenant_n solemn_o make_v with_o they_o by_o oath_n which_o can_v be_v break_v without_o perjury_n by_o i_o king_n reign_n be_v only_o a_o index_n and_o declaration_n of_o god_n will_n and_o pleasure_n which_o do_v not_o take_v away_o or_o destroy_v the_o people_n right_a or_o liberty_n saul_n be_v not_o king_n so_o absolute_o and_o so_o immediate_o from_o god_n that_o it_o exclude_v all_o election_n of_o the_o people_n but_o be_v afterward_o choose_v by_o lot_n by_o all_o the_o people_n at_o mizpeh_n and_o all_o the_o people_n shout_v and_o say_v god_n save_o the_o king_n 1_o sam._n 10._o 17_o 24._o and_o afterward_o behold_v the_o king_n who_o you_o have_v choose_v chap._n 12._o 23._o do_v not_o all_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n capitulate_v and_o covenant_n with_o david_n before_o the_o lord_n in_o hebron_n and_o then_o and_o not_o till_o then_o anoint_v he_o king_n over_o israel_n 1_o chron._n 11_o 13._o all_o the_o man_n of_o war_n come_v with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n to_o hebron_n to_o make_v david_n king_n over_o all_o israel_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n also_o of_o israel_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n to_o make_v david_n king_n chap._n 12._o 38._o do_v not_o all_o the_o people_n of_o judah_n take_v azariah_n who_o be_v sixteen_o year_n old_a and_o make_v he_o king_n instead_o of_o his_o father_n amaziah_n 2_o
king._n 14._o 21._o do_v not_o jeroboam_n and_o all_o israel_n come_v to_o sechem_n to_o make_v rehoboam_n king_n etc._n etc._n as_o before_o 2_o king._n 12._o 16._o have_v not_o all_o nation_n the_o same_o undeniable_a right_n to_o capitulate_v and_o set_v king_n over_o they_o and_o bind_v they_o by_o their_o own_o law_n and_o term_n and_o by_o solemn_a oath_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o jew_n in_o their_o sanhedrim_n melec_n and_o other_o part_n of_o their_o talmud_n with_o the_o writer_n thereon_o that_o it_o be_v the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o their_o kingdom_n that_o their_o king_n of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n especial_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v as_o well_o as_o to_o judge_v have_v not_o all_o our_o english_a king_n as_o well_o as_o their_o subject_n have_v english_a bound_n by_o law_n quas_fw-la vulgus_fw-la eligerit_fw-la have_v not_o our_o king_n confess_v and_o own_a that_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o serve_v they_o but_o according_a to_o our_o law_n and_o our_o allegiance_n be_v not_o absolute_a but_o bound_v and_o limit_v by_o law._n nay_o the_o old_a oath_n in_o saxon_a and_o first_o in_o norman_a time_n do_v respect_v the_o kingdom_n and_o its_o common_a good_a and_o profit_n to_o defend_v the_o kingdom_n with_o the_o king._n sicut_fw-la conjurati_fw-la fratres_fw-la ad_fw-la defendendum_fw-la regnum_fw-la contra_fw-la alienigenas_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la injurias_fw-la una_fw-la oum_fw-la domino_fw-la rege_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o which_o be_v say_v before_o concern_v the_o right_n of_o government_n be_v as_o just_o and_o as_o undeniable_o applicable_a to_o the_o right_n of_o legislation_n whereby_o to_o govern_v which_o power_n god_n uncontrolable_o have_v over_o all_o the_o world._n and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n whereunto_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n be_v subject_a the_o lawful_a power_n of_o make_v law_n to_o command_v and_o govern_v whole_a nation_n kingdom_n and_o politic_a society_n of_o man_n belong_v so_o proper_o unto_o the_o same_o entire_a society_n that_o for_o any_o person_n how_o mighty_a and_o of_o what_o degree_n or_o kind_a soever_o on_o earth_n to_o exercise_v the_o same_o of_o himself_o and_o not_o either_o by_o express_a commission_n immediate_o and_o personal_o receive_v from_o god_n unto_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o pretence_n but_o by_o impudence_n or_o else_o by_o authority_n derive_v by_o consent_n and_o suffrage_n of_o those_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n on_o who_o they_o violent_o impose_v law_n it_o be_v no_o better_a than_o mere_a tyranny_n just_a law_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o which_o public_a approbation_n by_o their_o own_o consent_n have_v not_o make_v so_o for_o what_o prince_n or_o potentate_n soever_o govern_v they_o never_o so_o wise_o and_o with_o never_o so_o good_a intent_n and_o design_n with_o never_o so_o good_a success_n yet_o nevertheless_o they_o transgress_v both_o divine_a and_o human_a law_n if_o they_o have_v not_o the_o public_a sanction_n and_o stamp_n of_o the_o govern_v for_o their_o right_n of_o govern_v they_o the_o will_n pleasure_n and_o command_v of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a perpetual_a and_o immutable_a rule_n of_o justice_n to_o which_o all_o man_n without_o exception_n aught_o to_o submit_v and_o obey_v absolute_o the_o command_v of_o prince_n though_o his_o vicegerent_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v only_o on_o condition_n viz._n so_o that_o they_o command_v nothing_o that_o be_v sinful_a or_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n or_o municipal_a law_n of_o the_o country_n prince_n that_o require_v such_o obedience_n to_o their_o command_n do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v make_v their_o throne_n equal_a to_o the_o throne_n of_o the_o almighty_a who_o never_o have_v give_v nor_o never_o will_v his_o glory_n to_o another_o isaiah_n 48._o 1._o the_o command_n of_o pharaoh_n to_o slay_v the_o hebrew_n child_n exod._n 1._o 21._o be_v unjust_a and_o god_n bless_v the_o midwife_n that_o refuse_v to_o obey_v it_o so_o god_n bless_v daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o refuse_v to_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_n nebuchadnezar_n prodigious_a idol_n so_o abdias_n refuse_v to_o slay_v the_o prophet_n contrary_a to_o the_o command_n of_o jezabel_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a hide_v they_o from_o her_o fury_n and_o nourish_v they_o 1_o king._n 18._o 13._o so_o matathias_n oppose_v and_o resist_v antiochus_n command_v sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o idol_n so_o christ_n and_o after_o he_o the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o gospel_n public_o and_o private_o contrary_a to_o all_o command_n of_o caesar_n chief_a priest_n and_o scribes_z allege_v for_o their_o justification_n act_v 5._o 22._o who_o example_n the_o holy_a marter_n follow_v the_o authority_n of_o all_o magistrate_n be_v it_o never_o so_o great_a be_v bound_v and_o circumscribe_v by_o god_n himself_o by_o piety_n and_o charity_n and_o if_o they_o transgress_v those_o rule_n the_o 5._o of_o act_n 22._o take_v place_n lest_o we_o be_v find_v in_o the_o company_n of_o those_o mention_v mich._n 6._o 16._o who_o god_n curse_v for_o that_o they_o obey_v the_o wicked_a command_n of_o king_n chap._n iu._n examination_n of_o some_o different_a opinion_n king_n though_o nominate_v by_o god_n yet_o have_v their_o confirmation_n by_o the_o people_n on_o their_o own_o term_n and_o have_v a_o just_a right_a to_o choose_v or_o reject_v to_o limit_v and_o bound_v they_o have_v thus_o demonstrate_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o profitableness_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o final_a end_n and_o efficient_a cause_n and_o just_a right_n thereof_o where_o and_o in_o who_o vest_v wherein_o i_o have_v not_o use_v cunning_o devise_v sophism_n or_o 〈…〉_z to_o the_o custom_n of_o some_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n but_o plain_a demonstration_n of_o truth_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o reason_n neither_o 〈◊〉_d i_o singular_a in_o th●se_a position_n and_o fundamental_a basis_n and_o right_a of_o all_o just_a dominion_n but_o have_v follow_v herein_o judicious_a hooker_n that_o english_a oracle_n and_o padre_n paolo_n that_o oracle_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o divers_a other_o and_o whoever_o will_v peruse_v the_o collection_n of_o the_o author_n 〈◊〉_d goldastus_n or_o the_o avant-proposdes_a lettres_n &_o embassade_n de_fw-fr missire_n philipe_v canays_n 〈◊〉_d the_o fresne_n wherein_o be_v the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o 145_o tract_n wherein_o you_o 〈…〉_z divers_a good_a author_n of_o the_o judgement_n back_v with_o sound_a reason_n for_o such_o 〈…〉_z but_o because_o nothing_o can_v be_v so_o advise_o so_o careful_o so_o punctual_o 〈◊〉_d as_o to_o escape_v the_o contradiction_n of_o subtle_a prevaricate_a and_o perverse_a wit_n i_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d the_o liberty_n to_o examine_v the_o different_a opinion_n of_o some_o other_o and_o those_o not_o 〈…〉_z but_o shall_v not_o clog_v this_o paper_n with_o many_o name_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o name_v 〈…〉_z viz._n it_o be_v certain_a that_o king_n have_v their_o power_n from_o none_o but_o god_n bold_o say_v 〈…〉_z be_v justify_v by_o any_o law_n of_o god_n of_o nature_n or_o of_o reason_n it_o be_v pure_a 〈…〉_z doctrine_n and_o diametrical_o opposite_a to_o those_o who_o affirm_v that_o all_o 〈…〉_z law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n be_v immediate_o in_o the_o multitude_n as_o in_o its_o 〈…〉_z confer_v the_o same_o on_o one_o or_o more_o by_o the_o same_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n the_o 〈…〉_z give_v be_v obj._n that_o by_o nature_n law_n no_o man_n can_v give_v that_o which_o he_o have_v 〈…〉_z have_v just_a power_n of_o his_o own_o life_n and_o death_n or_o member_n therefore_o much_o less_o of_o 〈…〉_z therefore_o the_o people_n can_v establish_v government_n because_o they_o have_v 〈…〉_z or_o death_n no_o not_o of_o their_o own_o and_o therefore_o can_v confer_v any_o such_o power_n 〈…〉_z who_o give_v life_n have_v that_o power_n and_o they_o to_o who_o he_o give_v it_o sol._n no_o more_o hau●_n king_n without_o some_o lawful_a power_n confer_v on_o they_o so_o to_o do_v which_o they_o can_v 〈◊〉_d have_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o therefore_o must_v have_v it_o aliunde_fw-la viz._n from_o and_o by_o consent_n of_o other_o hence_o that_o command_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v exod._n 20._o 13._o wh●s●_n shed_v 〈…〉_z by_o man_n shall_v his_o blood_n be_v shed_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o beast_n will_v i_o require_v it_o 〈…〉_z hand_n of_o man_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o man_n brother_n will_v i_o require_v the_o life_n of_o man_n g●n_n 9_o 〈…〉_z thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v be_v the_o general_a precept_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o oblige_v 〈…〉_z private_a men._n and_o whoso_o shede_v man_n blood_n by_o man_n shall_v his_o blood_n be_v shed_v by_o 〈…〉_z be_v by_o the_o magistrate_n who_o power_n be_v here_o establish_v for_o shed_v the_o blood_n 〈…〉_z murderers_z as_o the_o chaldee_n express_v it_o say_v with_o
the_o second_o time_n and_o anoint_v he_o unto_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v chief_a governor_n and_o zadock_n to_o be_v priest_n 1_o chron._n 28._o 1._o &_o 29._o 22_o 24._o solomon_n be_v dead_a all_o israel_n come_v to_o sechem_n to_o make_v rehoboam_n king_n 1_o king_n 12._o 11._o 2_o chron._n 10._o 1._o amaziah_n be_v slay_v uzziah_n his_o only_a son_n be_v make_v king_n by_o all_o the_o people_n 2_o chron._n 26._o 1._o to_o what_o tend_v that_o say_n of_o hushai_n unto_o absalon_n nay_o but_o who_o the_o lord_n and_o this_o people_n and_o all_o the_o man_n of_o israel_n choose_v his_o will_n i_o be_v and_o with_o he_o will_v i_o abide_v 2_o sam._n 16._o 18._o but_o to_o demonstrate_v that_o that_o king_n be_v right_o and_o lawful_o constitute_v king_n who_o the_o people_n choose_v and_o all_o the_o man_n of_o sechem_n gather_v together_o and_o all_o the_o house_n of_o millo_n go_v and_o make_v abimelech_n king_n judg._n 9_o 6._o and_o he_o that_o be_v over_o the_o house_n and_o he_o that_o be_v over_o the_o city_n the_o elder_n also_o and_o bringer_n up_o of_o the_o child_n send_v to_o jehu_n say_v we_o be_v thy_o servant_n and_o will_v do_v all_o that_o thou_o shall_v bid_v we_o we_o will_v not_o make_v any_o king_n do_v thou_o that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o thy_o eye_n 2_o king_n 10._o 5._o and_o all_o these_o man_n of_o war_n that_o can_v keep_v rank_a come_v with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n to_o hebron_n to_o make_v david_n king_n over_o all_o israel_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n also_o of_o israel_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n to_o make_v david_n king_n 1_o chron._n 12._o 28._o several_a time_n the_o make_n of_o a_o king_n be_v ascribe_v and_o give_v to_o the_o people_n viz._n wherefore_o be_v it_o record_v deut._n 17._o 14._o when_o thou_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v set_v a_o king_n over_o i_o if_o it_o be_v not_o their_o right_n and_o power_n to_o make_v a_o king_n and_o without_o such_o power_n no_o law_n can_v be_v impose_v on_o they_o not_o to_o make_v a_o strange_a king_n and_o yet_o to_o choose_v one_o of_o their_o brethren_n be_v certain_o a_o warrant_n from_o heaven_n to_o choose_v beyond_o contradiction_n all_o the_o congregation_n make_v jeroboam_n king_n over_o israel_n 1_o king_n 12._o 20._o so_o they_o have_v power_n both_o to_o make_v and_o not_o to_o make_v a_o king_n over_o themselves_o and_o also_o to_o limit_v and_o bound_v their_o king_n to_o what_o condition_n they_o please_v or_o else_o to_o fall_v from_o they_o as_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n do_v from_o rehoboam_n and_o choose_v another_o 1_o king_n 12._o 19_o nor_o be_v saul_n himself_o former_o king_n as_o soon_o as_o samuel_n have_v anoint_v he_o nor_o yet_o because_o another_o spirit_n be_v infuse_v in_o he_o no_o not_o until_o all_o israel_n choose_v he_o king_n at_o mizpeh_n jehoash_fw-mi and_o jehoiada_n make_v a_o covenant_n between_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o king_n and_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o lord_n people_n and_o between_o the_o king_n also_o and_o the_o people_n 2_o chron._n 23._o 16._o by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o though_o king_n be_v so_o constitute_v and_o influence_v by_o the_o prophet_n from_o god_n himself_o yet_o not_o so_o absolute_o as_o to_o exclude_v common_a consent_n but_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v under_o covenant_n and_o agreement_n with_o the_o people_n whereunto_o they_o be_v equal_o strict_o and_o reciprocal_o oblige_v to_o performance_n and_o that_o their_o just_a right_n of_o admit_v governor_n over_o they_o be_v reserve_v unto_o they_o upon_o their_o own_o term_n and_o condition_n even_o then_o and_o certain_o much_o more_o now_o see_v god_n do_v not_o now_o immediate_o interpose_v in_o any_o such_o choice_n the_o same_o right_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n be_v so_o undeniable_o in_o they_o that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v unto_o they_o and_o all_o king_n govern_v otherwise_o than_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n be_v but_o intruder_n usurper_n and_o tyrant_n and_o whoever_o violate_v those_o covenant_n in_o a_o high_a degree_n be_v undoubted_o rebel_n to_o the_o law_n and_o whoever_o commit_v any_o unjust_a force_n against_o the_o law_n the_o defence_n must_v necessary_o be_v just_a and_o warrantable_a before_o god_n and_o man._n consult_v profane_a history_n and_o it_o will_v be_v find_v the_o power_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n be_v assert_v and_o defend_v and_o practise_v according_o even_o among_o the_o heathen_n and_o in_o all_o well-governed_a kingdom_n the_o child_n do_v not_o succeed_v their_o parent_n until_o the_o people_n by_o their_o magistrate_n have_v de_fw-mi novo_fw-la invest_v they_o by_o the_o diamond_n and_o sceptre_n in_o christian_a kingdom_n which_o to_o this_o day_n reign_v by_o succession_n the_o same_o be_v evident_a the_o king_n of_o france_n spain_n etc._n etc._n be_v all_o inaugurated_a and_o crown_v by_o the_o peer_n patritian_n and_o magistrate_n representative_n of_o the_o kingdom_n no_o otherwise_o than_o the_o emperor_n of_o germany_n be_v by_o the_o prince_n elector_n thereof_o and_o the_o king_n of_o poland_n by_o the_o vayvode_n or_o palatine_n neither_o be_v their_o kingly_a honour_n own_v in_o the_o free_a city_n till_o so_o crown_v constitute_v and_o confirm_v neither_o be_v the_o time_n of_o their_o reign_n compute_v but_o from_o the_o day_n of_o their_o inauguration_n which_o manifest_o appear_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o other_o kingdom_n where_o the_o state_n often_o prefer_v a_o kinsman_n before_o a_o son_n a_o young_a son_n before_o a_o elder_n which_o kingdom_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o people_n be_v translate_v from_o one_o to_o another_o without_o regard_n have_v to_o the_o right_a heir_n as_o to_o the_o frank_n before_o they_o come_v into_o france_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o their_o petty_a king_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o ordines_fw-la populi_n as_o julius_n caesar_n testify_v lib._n 5._o c._n 8._o f._n 57_o de_fw-fr bello_fw-la gallico_n whilst_o ambiorix_n &_o catileucus_n eburonum_fw-la rex_fw-la i_o e._n king_n of_o a_o people_n inhabit_v between_o the_o rind_n and_o the_o mose_n the_o people_n of_o liege_n or_o luke_n beyond_o brabant_n in_o a_o certain_a oration_n rehearse_v the_o word_n say_v that_o such_o be_v his_o empire_n that_o the_o people_n have_v not_o less_o right_a against_o and_o over_o he_o than_o he_o over_o they_o ut_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la in_o se_fw-la juris_fw-la multitudo_fw-la quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la in_o multitudinem_fw-la the_o same_o also_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o vercingentorix_n arvernorum_fw-la rex_fw-la a_o people_n of_o france_n by_o the_o river_n of_o loyer_n defend_v his_o cause_n in_o a_o public_a assembly_n as_o it_o be_v record_v by_o the_o same_o caesar_n lib._n 7._o c._n 4._o afterward_o the_o frank_n and_o the_o gaul_n become_v one_o under_o the_o name_n of_o francogalli_a who_o although_o they_o choose_v their_o king_n first_o out_o of_o the_o family_n of_o merovey_n than_o out_o of_o the_o posterity_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o after_o out_o of_o the_o successor_n of_o hugh_n capet_n yet_o from_o the_o beginning_n they_o so_o constitute_v their_o monarchy_n that_o their_o king_n do_v not_o reign_v only_o by_o the_o right_n of_o succession_n but_o be_v also_o choose_v consensu_fw-la ordinum_fw-la regni_fw-la and_o such_o be_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o franco_n galli_n king_n according_a to_o aymoinus_fw-la lib._n 5._o c._n 23._o which_o charles_n the_o bald_a speak_v quia_fw-la sicut_fw-la isti_fw-la venerabiles_fw-la episcopi_fw-la etc._n etc._n because_o you_o venerable_a bishop_n have_v proclaim_v i_o choose_v to_o the_o government_n for_o your_o safety_n and_o profit_n know_v you_o that_o i_o will_v preserve_v the_o honour_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o of_o holy_a church_n and_o of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o according_a to_o your_o rank_n and_o quality_n and_o according_a to_o my_o knowledge_n and_o power_n will_v honour_v and_o keep_v safe_a and_o to_o every_o one_o both_o clergy_n and_o laiety_n preserve_v and_o maintain_v law_n and_o justice_n that_o kingly_a honour_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o people_n may_v be_v preserve_v and_o defend_v as_o your_o forefather_n do_v to_o my_o predecessor_n just_o and_o faithful_o and_o so_o the_o son_n of_o pepin_n charles_n the_o great_a anno_fw-la 751._o lewis_n the_o three_o and_o carloman_n anno_fw-la 768._o bastard_n to_o lewis_n and_o no_o regard_n have_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o lewis_n will_n who_o have_v name_v end_v for_o regent_n and_o so_o be_v both_o crown_v king_n lewis_n the_o idle_a son_n or_o brother_n to_o carloman_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v king_n but_o not_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o state_n as_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o dispossess_v he_o he_o die_v charles_n the_o second_o call_v the_o gross_a emperor_n
king_n receive_v all_o royalty_n from_o the_o people_n and_o for_o behoof_n of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o by_o a_o special_a trust_n of_o safety_n and_o liberty_n express_o by_o the_o people_n limit_v and_o by_o their_o own_o concession_n and_o oath_n ratify_v as_o for_o certain_a they_o do_v than_o emperor_n and_o king_n can_v be_v say_v to_o have_v so_o unlimited_a and_o high_a a_o property_n in_o our_o life_n liberty_n and_o possession_n or_o in_o any_o thing_n else_o appertain_v to_o their_o crown_n as_o the_o govern_v have_v in_o their_o dignity_n or_o in_o themselves_o the_o safety_n of_o kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v value_v above_o any_o right_n of_o any_o monarch_n as_o the_o end_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v above_o the_o mean_n it_o be_v not_o just_a nor_o possible_a for_o any_o nation_n so_o to_o enslave_v itself_o to_o resign_v its_o own_o interest_n to_o the_o will_n of_o one_o or_o many_o lord_n as_o that_o they_o may_v destroy_v or_o abuse_v it_o without_o injury_n and_o yet_o to_o have_v no_o right_a to_o preserve_v or_o right_v itself_o for_o since_o all_o natural_a power_n be_v in_o those_o that_o obey_v they_o which_o contract_n to_o obey_v to_o their_o own_o ruin_n or_o slavery_n or_o have_v so_o contract_v they_o which_o esteem_v such_o contract_n before_o their_o own_o preservation_n be_v felonious_a to_o themselves_o and_o rebel_n to_o nature_n livy_n lib._n 1._o ab_fw-la v._o c._n describe_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n record_n that_o among_o those_o hundred_o name_v king_n after_o the_o death_n of_o romulus_n who_o succeed_v and_o govern_v that_o people_n successive_o that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o please_v the_o people_n it_o be_v ordain_v by_o common_a consent_n that_o the_o people_n shall_v choose_v their_o king_n and_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o senate_n shall_v confirm_v they_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o king_n be_v set_v up_o by_o the_o people_n on_o condition_n which_o if_o they_o perform_v not_o the_o people_n be_v convocate_v according_a to_o their_o distinct_a order_n and_o rank_n by_o the_o same_o authority_n they_o have_v to_o set_v up_o king_n on_o term_n and_o condition_n by_o the_o very_a selfsame_a authority_n they_o may_v curb_v and_o dethrone_v they_o which_o they_o make_v good_a against_o proud_a tarquin_n their_o last_n king._n moreover_o seneca_n observe_v out_o o●_n cicero_n de_fw-fr republica_n that_o appeal_n do_v lie_v from_o the_o king_n to_o the_o people_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o horatius_n that_o kill_v his_o sister_n who_o by_o delegate_n appoint_v by_o tullus_n hostilius_n the_o king_n be_v condemn_v yet_o be_v afterward_o absolve_v and_o quit_v by_o the_o people_n dionysius_n testify_v the_o same_o that_o romulus_n when_o he_o consult_v about_o settle_v the_o kingdom_n do_v declare_v that_o the_o king_n be_v the_o keeper_n of_o the_o law_n yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n that_o the_o power_n of_o create_v magistrate_n make_v law_n war_n and_o peace_n be_v still_o leave_v with_o the_o people_n as_o inherent_a in_o they_o populi_n suffragia_fw-la sunto_fw-la magistratus_fw-la creanto_fw-la leges_fw-la sciscunto_o pacem_fw-la bellumque_fw-la jubento_fw-la calv._n 985._o which_o far_o appear_v by_o the_o history_n of_o collatinus_n who_o first_o be_v consul_n with_o brutus_n that_o the_o people_n by_o which_o title_n be_v understand_v the_o plebeian_n state_n which_o now_o be_v call_v the_o three_o state_n as_o among_o the_o roman_n viz._n patrician_n equestrian_a &_o plebeian_n have_v the_o same_o power_n against_o the_o consul_n although_o they_o have_v the_o supreme_a power_n when_o there_o be_v no_o dictator_n to_o this_o livy_n lib._n 2._o ab_fw-la v._o c._n give_v testimony_n timens_fw-la the_o consul_n fear_v to_o be_v call_v to_o account_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o consulship_n quit_v it_o but_o collatinus_n the_o consul_n though_o accuse_v of_o no_o crime_n yet_o be_v of_o the_o name_n and_o family_n of_o the_o tarquin_n be_v suspect_v and_o remove_v by_o the_o people_n hence_o it_o be_v easy_o gather_v that_o the_o people_n will_v much_o more_o use_v their_o authority_n on_o any_o consul_n if_o criminal_o accuse_v although_o by_o the_o law_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v question_v till_o their_o time_n be_v end_v it_o be_v true_a after_o the_o decemvirate_n be_v constitute_v which_o be_v anno_fw-la 302._o no_o appeal_n do_v lie_v from_o they_o to_o any_o other_o magistrate_n but_o when_o they_o alternate_o govern_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o appeal_v from_o the_o judgement_n or_o sentence_n of_o one_o to_o the_o judgement_n and_o sentence_n of_o another_o so_o far_o unpleasing_a be_v a_o unlimited_a power_n to_o the_o roman_n that_o at_o last_o the_o decemvirate_n be_v force_v to_o quit_v their_o power_n it_o be_v true_a no_o appeal_n lay_v from_o the_o dictatorship_n but_o that_o power_n be_v never_o erect_v but_o in_o very_o perilous_a time_n and_o extreme_a oppression_n necessitate_v and_o last_v but_o a_o very_a little_a while_n cal._n 1050._o semestre_fw-fr scilicet_fw-la and_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o admirable_a if_o at_o any_o time_n a_o appeal_n to_o the_o people_n from_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o dictator_n be_v bring_v he_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n consent_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o transaction_n between_o l._n papyrius_n dictator_n &_o 2._o fabias_n anno_fw-la ab_fw-la v._o c._n 429._o though_o julius_n caesar_n violent_o obtain_v his_o power_n over_o the_o roman_n yet_o will_v seem_v and_o do_v pretend_v to_o have_v have_v all_o his_o dignity_n and_o gift_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n from_o the_o people_n for_o which_o usurpation_n he_o be_v afterward_o slay_v so_o augustus_n no_o heir_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o adopt_v by_o he_o to_o be_v his_o successor_n pretend_v that_o he_o be_v of_o right_o choose_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n neither_o do_v tiberius_n by_o any_o other_o way_n succeed_v he_o and_o after_o he_o caligula_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o consent_n both_o of_o the_o senate_n and_o the_o people_n but_o claudius_n first_o obtain_v the_o empire_n and_o the_o military_a power_n by_o bribe_n but_o do_v not_o govern_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n nero_n have_v poison_v he_o succeed_v he_o and_o reign_v tyrannical_o the_o senate_n resume_v their_o power_n which_o have_v a_o long_a time_n sleep_v condemn_v he_o as_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a state_n by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o caesar_n become_a tyrant_n may_v lawful_o be_v resist_v and_o censure_v and_o though_o their_o empire_n seem_v very_o large_a by_o the_o lex_fw-la regius_fw-la make_v for_o augustus_n and_o confirm_v for_o vespasian_n yet_o it_o be_v circumscribe_v and_o limit_v neither_o be_v it_o approve_v of_o without_o exception_n as_o long_o as_o there_o be_v place_n for_o law_n and_o equity_n so_o the_o athenian_n when_o they_o change_v their_o democracy_n into_o a_o aristocracy_n they_o set_v over_o themselves_o first_o thirty_o than_o ten_o who_o abuse_v their_o poower_n they_o soon_o remove_v and_o punish_v they_o by_o the_o same_o power_n by_o which_o they_o create_v they_o the_o lacedaemonian_a king_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o family_n of_o the_o heraclide_n which_o lysander_n endeavour_v to_o have_v alter_v but_o can_v not_o plutarch_n their_o king_n be_v choose_v on_o term_n and_o condition_n the_o people_n appoint_v certain_a call_v ephori_fw-la to_o be_v a_o bridle_n to_o they_o these_o ephori_fw-la sometime_o depose_v banish_v and_o behead_v till_o at_o last_o cleomenes_n the_o tyrant_n traitorous_o slay_v they_o all_o zenophon_n record_v of_o the_o lacedaemonian_n that_o both_o the_o king_n and_o ephori_fw-la be_v wont_n every_o month_n mutual_o to_o swear_v to_o each_o other_o these_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o king_n in_o his_o own_o name_n that_o he_o will_v govern_v according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o their_o law_n and_o that_o they_o will_v keep_v the_o citizen_n true_a to_o he_o if_o he_o keep_v his_o oath_n this_o be_v the_o right_n power_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o heathen_a of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o let_v we_o now_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o the_o israelite_n the_o most_o perfect_a government_n in_o the_o world_n if_o they_o will_v have_v be_v content_v with_o it_o for_o they_o have_v god_n for_o their_o only_a monarch_n not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o because_o he_o choose_v they_o to_o be_v his_o peculiar_a people_n in_o that_o he_o give_v they_o law_n by_o moses_n and_o give_v they_o the_o promise_a land_n by_o jeshua_n who_o govern_v they_o by_o judge_n at_o which_o time_n the_o government_n be_v monarchical_a though_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o judge_n which_o if_o king_n will_v now_o imitate_v and_o govern_v according_o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o these_o
express_v to_o which_o the_o king_n himself_o do_v assent_v and_o by_o his_o diploma_n approve_v of_o it_o which_o transaction_n if_o violate_v by_o he_o all_o his_o subject_n feudatary_n etc._n etc._n both_o present_a and_o to_o come_v shall_v neither_o obey_v nor_o serve_v he_o but_o shall_v rather_o be_v subject_a to_o obey_v the_o duke_n of_o burgundy_n and_o his_o successor_n such_o be_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o violation_n of_o royal_a faith_n plight_v and_o may_v not_o all_o kingdom_n expect_v the_o just_a performance_n of_o their_o oath_n and_o stipulation_n make_v by_o their_o king_n at_o their_o inauguration_n who_o be_v thereby_o make_v the_o keeper_n and_o protector_n of_o their_o law_n and_o what_o better_a issue_n can_v any_o king_n expect_v that_o violate_v their_o oath_n and_o trust_n though_o by_o wiles_n and_o sham_n and_o royal_a influence_n only_o on_o judge_n and_o other_o officer_n of_o their_o kingdom_n through_o who_o hand_n the_o management_n of_o law_n do_v pass_v judge_n sheriff_n justice_n of_o the_o peace_n constable_n privy-counsellor_n jury_n etc._n etc._n in_o sum_n the_o chief_a empery_n be_v so_o in_o king_n and_o other_o supreme_a magistrate_n that_o if_o they_o transgress_v the_o law_n and_o turn_v tyrant_n and_o will_v not_o be_v govern_v by_o just_a law_n unto_o which_o they_o have_v swear_v it_o be_v the_o just_a right_n of_o inferior_a magistrate_n and_o ordines_fw-la regni_fw-la to_o hinder_v their_o tyranny_n and_o reduce_v the_o government_n to_o its_o pristine_a state_n and_o condition_n and_o in_o so_o do_v they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v seditious_a or_o rebellious_a as_o that_o they_o do_v but_o their_o duty_n to_o god_n and_o their_o country_n as_o by_o the_o above-recited_n example_n appear_v the_o truth_n of_o which_o appear_v by_o many_o reason_n 1._o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n on_o which_o depend_v the_o preservation_n of_o all_o human_a society_n of_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n in_o all_o pact_n and_o contract_n mutual_o make_v and_o consent_v unto_o the_o same_o party_n by_o who_o the_o obligation_n be_v make_v have_v the_o same_o power_n to_o dissolve_v the_o same_o as_o often_o as_o just_a reason_n shall_v require_v so_o they_o that_o have_v power_n to_o create_v king_n have_v power_n also_o to_o curb_v and_o censure_v they_o so_o if_o the_o essential_a condition_n of_o the_o contract_n for_o which_o the_o contract_n be_v make_v be_v manifest_o violate_v and_o break_v the_o contract_n as_o between_o rahab_n and_o the_o spy_n be_v absolute_o void_a let_v those_o that_o hold_v king_n accountable_a to_o god_n only_o show_v if_o they_o can_v any_o nation_n so_o foolish_a and_o unwise_a that_o willing_o and_o witting_o without_o force_n or_o fear_n ever_o submit_v so_o absolute_o to_o any_o king_n or_o government_n that_o they_o do_v not_o express_o or_o tacit_o provide_v for_o their_o own_o safety_n and_o good_a by_o observance_n of_o their_o own_o good_a law_n it_o a_o conqueror_n oblige_v the_o conquer_a by_o oath_n then_o according_a to_o the_o civil_a law_n that_o those_o that_o be_v extort_a by_o force_n and_o unjust_a fear_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v account_v lawful_a i_o confess_v the_o pulpit_n preach_v a_o contrary_a doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o irreligious_a or_o unnatural_a condition_n get_v by_o force_n unjust_a fear_n fraud_n or_o wicked_a practice_n shall_v be_v bind_v or_o esteem_v as_o lawful_a it_o be_v a_o general_a rule_n of_o right_n and_o just_a found_v on_o the_o common_a principle_n of_o nature_n so_o firm_a and_o jure_v that_o nothing_o that_o be_v manifest_o adverse_a and_o repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n can_v be_v hold_v for_o right_a and_o just_a among_o men._n this_o be_v general_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o pact_n manifest_o unjust_a or_o irreligious_a which_o no_o man_n can_v just_o require_v nor_o any_o man_n just_o submit_v unto_o though_o require_v such_o be_v the_o reproachful_a condition_n require_v of_o they_o of_o gabesh_n gilead_n by_o nahash_n the_o ammonite_n that_o he_o may_v thrust_v out_o all_o their_o right_a eye_n 1_o sam._n 11._o 2._o such_o and_o worse_a be_v the_o condition_n require_v by_o antiochus_n the_o cruel_a tyrant_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o jerusalem_n viz._n that_o they_o shall_v abjure_v the_o true_a religion_n 1_o macc._n 1._o 51._o in_o such_o case_n where_o the_o condition_n of_o temporal_a estate_n be_v only_o hear_v and_o religion_n not_o concern_v it_o be_v better_a to_o have_v respect_n to_o their_o oath_n than_o to_o their_o life_n but_o when_o religion_n be_v concern_v oath_n must_v be_v very_o strict_o observe_v though_o all_o god_n covenant_n and_o promise_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o yet_o be_v they_o all_o tacit_o or_o express_o conditional_a so_o that_o if_o they_o keep_v not_o covenant_n with_o god_n god_n will_v not_o keep_v covenant_n nor_o promise_n with_o they_o so_o though_o god_n do_v solemn_o swear_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n that_o he_o will_v bring_v they_o into_o that_o very_a good_a land_n that_o flow_v with_o milk_n and_o h●●y_n yet_o suffer_v he_o none_o of_o they_o to_o enter_v but_o caleb_n who_o be_v of_o another_o spirit_n and_o joshua_n doubtless_o you_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o the_o land_n concern_v which_o i_o swear_v to_o make_v you_o dwell_v therein_o numb_a 14._o 30._o and_o you_o shall_v know_v my_o breach_n of_o promise_n or_o alter_v of_o my_o purpose_n verse_n 34._o i_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v i_o will_v sure_o do_v it_o unto_o all_o this_o evil_a congregation_n that_o be_v gather_v together_o against_o i_o verse_n 35._o and_o that_o just_o because_o they_o first_o break_v with_o he_o nehem_n 9_o 16_o 17_o 18._o there_o be_v always_o some_o tacit_a or_o explicit_a condition_n express_v or_o imply_v in_o all_o such_o promise_n as_o well_o as_o threaten_n therefore_o as_o to_o one_o and_o the_o other_o god_n have_v give_v we_o this_o general_a rule_n not_o only_o with_o particular_a person_n but_o with_o nation_n jer._n 18._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o at_o what_o instant_n i_o shall_v speak_v concern_v a_o nation_n or_o concern_v a_o kingdom_n to_o pluck_v up_o and_o to_o pull_v down_o and_o to_o destory_n it_o if_o that_o nation_n against_o who_o i_o have_v pronounce_v turn_v from_o their_o evil_n i_o will_v repent_v of_o the_o evil_n i_o think_v to_o do_v unto_o they_o so_o when_o ever_o i_o shall_v speak_v concern_v a_o nation_n and_o concern_v a_o kingdom_n to_o build_v and_o to_o plant_v it_o if_o it_o do_v evil_a in_o my_o sight_n that_o it_o obey_v not_o my_o voice_n then_o will_v i_o repent_v of_o the_o good_a wherewith_o i_o say_v i_o will_v benefit_v they_o i._n e._n will_v not_o do_v it_o whereupon_o st._n jerom_n say_v non_fw-la ergo_fw-la quod_fw-la pollicetur_fw-la deus_fw-la statim_fw-la futurum_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o eos_fw-la sua_fw-la promissa_fw-la implet_fw-la qui_fw-la custodiunt_fw-la manda●a_fw-la illius_fw-la covenant_n and_o promise_n on_o condition_n be_v equal_o oblige_v whoever_o fail_v the_o other_o be_v free_a it_o be_v the_o same_o among_o man_n that_o be_v in_o mutual_a stipulation_n and_o covenant_n whoever_o first_o break_v covenant_n be_v a_o rebel_n to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o other_o be_v ●r●e_a for_o which_o cause_n god_n blame_v and_o punish_v zedekiah_n the_o last_o king_n of_o the_o family_n of_o david_n for_o that_o contrary_a to_o his_o oath_n he_o fall_v from_o the_o king_n of_o the_o chaldean_n as_o i_o live_v say_v the_o lord_n sure_o in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o king_n dwell_v that_o make_v he_o king_n who_o oath_n he_o despise_v and_o who_o covenant_n he_o break_v even_o with_o he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o babylon_n he_o shall_v die_v ezek._n 17._o 16._o ver_fw-la per_fw-la 110._o and_o zedekiah_n not_o only_o by_o his_o oath_n but_o by_o the_o express_a command_n of_o god_n he_o and_o he_o be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o king_n of_o chaldaea_n which_o circumstance_n make_v zedekiah_n guilty_a of_o that_o defection_n and_o of_o perjury_n i_o like_v not_o that_o subject_n shall_v on_o every_o breach_n of_o oath_n withdraw_v their_o obedience_n and_o depart_v from_o their_o oath_n neither_o do_v i_o approve_v of_o that_o proverb_n fragenti_fw-la fidem_fw-la fides_fw-la frangatur_fw-la cidem_fw-la but_o on_o the_o contrary_a do_v deem_v it_o unlawful_a to_o break_v faith_n just_o plight_v but_o i_o do_v deny_v that_o subject_n do_v violate_v their_o faith_n against_o tyrant_n if_o they_o keep_v within_o their_o own_o bound_n and_o province_n do_v use_v their_o utmost_a to_o make_v tyrant_n keep_v their_o condition_n agree_v on_o and_o hinder_v they_o from_o break_v of_o they_o for_o the_o rule_n be_v general_a that_o contract_n and_o covenant_n either_o plain_o express_v or_o tacit_o to_o be_v understand_v be_v break_v and_o dissolve_v by_o he_o
and_o most_o proper_o it_o be_v only_o in_o his_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n wherein_o and_o wherewith_o his_o majesty_n have_v absolute_o the_o supreme_a power_n and_o consequent_o be_v absolute_o supreme_a head_n and_o governor_n from_o whence_o their_o be_v no_o appeal_n and_o without_o doubt_n the_o parliament_n may_v take_v a_o account_n of_o what_o be_v do_v by_o his_o majesty_n in_o his_o inferior_a court_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o of_o what_o be_v do_v by_o he_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o court._n what_o more_o usual_a than_o for_o parliament_n to_o call_v to_o a_o account_n all_o other_o court_n of_o justice_n and_o all_o officer_n and_o minister_n under_o his_o majesty_n even_o for_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o shall_v do_v against_o the_o law_n though_o by_o his_o majesty_n express_a command_n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o take_v a_o account_n of_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o majesty_n trust_n the_o law_n exempt_v his_o majesty_n from_o account_n in_o no_o other_o sense_n than_o it_o exempt_v he_o from_o fault_n because_o he_o be_v to_o do_v public_a affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o his_o officer_n and_o minister_n of_o state_n and_o not_o by_o himself_o and_o they_o be_v to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o that_o which_o the_o king_n do_v by_o they_o in_o which_o respect_n sir_n william_n thorp_n chief_a justice_n in_o edward_n the_o three_o time_n be_v charge_v for_o break_v the_o king_n oath_n as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lay_v the_o king_n authority_n be_v above_o his_o person_n and_o his_o personal_a command_n ought_v not_o to_o control_v those_o that_o proceed_v from_o his_o authority_n which_o reside_v in_o his_o court_n and_o his_o law_n and_o in_o his_o person_n act_v by_o the_o one_o and_o according_a to_o the_o other_o we_o be_v real_o such_o admirer_n and_o so_o fond_a of_o kingship_n and_o so_o willing_a to_o excuse_v all_o his_o peccadillo_n that_o we_o retain_v it_o as_o a_o maxim_n that_o the_o king_n can_v do_v no_o wrong_n i._n e._n he_o can_v do_v nothing_o but_o by_o law_n which_o can_v do_v no_o wrong_n and_o if_o he_o do_v against_o the_o law_n his_o personal_a act_n command_n or_o write_n oblige_v no_o more_o than_o if_o they_o be_v a_o child_n and_o the_o book_n call_v he_o a_o infant_n in_o law_n though_o his_o public_a capacity_n be_v not_o in_o nonage_n as_o the_o parliament_n declare_v in_o edward_n vi_o which_o be_v not_o to_o exempt_v he_o from_o error_n or_o excuse_v his_o crime_n but_o to_o show_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o his_o council_n and_o that_o his_o own_o personal_a grant_n or_o command_n can_v hurt_v any_o more_o than_o a_o infant_n which_o may_v be_v reclaim_v or_o recall_v not_o to_o say_v correct_v by_o the_o court_n of_o justice_n or_o the_o council_n of_o the_o kingdom_n king_n james_n of_o happy_a memory_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o parliament_n at_o white-hall_n march_v 21._o 1009._o tell_v they_o that_o a_o king_n govern_v in_o a_o settle_a kingdom_n leave_v to_o be_v a_o king_n and_o degenerate_v into_o a_o tyrant_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o leave_v off_o to_o rule_v according_a to_o his_o law_n in_o which_o case_n the_o king_n conscience_n may_v speak_v unto_o he_o as_o the_o poor_a widow_n say_v to_o philip_n of_o macedon_n either_o govern_v according_a to_o your_o law_n aut_fw-la ne_fw-la rex_fw-la ●is_fw-la therefore_o all_o king_n that_o aren●t_v tyrant_n or_o perjure_a will_n be_v glad_a to_o bound_v themselves_o within_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o law_n and_o they_o that_o persuade_v they_o the_o contrary_n be_v viper_n and_o pest_n both_o against_o they_o and_o the_o commonwealth_n ibid._n 531._o i_o will_v ever_o prefer_v the_o weal_n of_o the_o whole_a commonwealth_n in_o make_v of_o good_a law_n and_o constitution_n to_o any_o particular_a or_o private_a end_n of_o i_o think_v ever_o the_o wealth_n and_o weal_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n to_o be_v my_o great_a weal_n and_o worldly_a felicity_n p._n 493._o the_o argument_n bring_v for_o king_n be_v appoint_v by_o god_n only_o and_o their_o power_n derive_v from_o he_o only_o be_v ground_v on_o some_o few_o wrest_a and_o misunderstand_v place_n of_o scripture_n viz._n by_o i_o king_n reign_n and_o prince_n decree_v justice_n by_o i_o prince_n rule_v and_o noble_n even_o all_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n prov._n 8._o 15_o 16._o which_o be_v applicable_a to_o all_o other_o government_n as_o well_o as_o regal_a and_o make_v only_o for_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o kingly_a office_n and_o nothing_o at_o all_o for_o the_o designation_n or_o application_n of_o the_o person_n to_o the_o office_n or_o god_n immediate_a nomination_n or_o appointment_n of_o king_n but_o for_o approbation_n of_o kingly_a government_n among_o other_o government_n by_o judge_n or_o other_o whereby_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o kingly_a authority_n have_v no_o more_o of_o divine_a right_n than_o any_o other_o form_n of_o government_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o god_n do_v not_o of_o his_o own_o free_a choice_n primary_o erect_v and_o establish_v regal_a government_n but_o that_o of_o the_o judge_n as_o the_o best_a form_n of_o government_n but_o wave_v his_o own_o prerogative_n and_o wisdom_n and_o to_o gratify_v the_o public_a desire_n of_o a_o froward_a ungrateful_a and_o rebellious_a people_n who_o be_v use_v according_o by_o such_o their_o choice_n and_o feel_v the_o smart_n thereof_o according_o as_o samuel_n foretell_v so_o indulgent_a be_v god_n himself_o to_o national_a desire_v which_o shall_v be_v a_o document_n to_o king_n to_o comply_v very_o ready_o with_o the_o desire_n of_o their_o people_n in_o government_n of_o their_o kingdom_n as_o god_n here_o do_v beside_o i_o must_v repeat_v again_o that_o no_o man_n can_v have_v lawful_a authority_n to_o be_v king_n over_o any_o nation_n but_o he_o must_v have_v it_o either_o immediate_o from_o god_n almighty_n unto_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o possibility_n of_o pretence_n or_o from_o the_o public_a consent_n of_o the_o nation_n therefore_o king_n must_v have_v their_o just_a authority_n from_o the_o people_n let_v scripture_n itself_o be_v judge_n all_o israel_n make_v omri_n captain_n of_o the_o host_n king_n over_o israel_n not_o zimri_n and_o his_o son_n achab_n rather_o than_o tibni_n the_o son_n of_o ginath_n 1_o king_n 16._o 16_o 21_o 22._o and_o the_o people_n make_v solomon_n king_n not_o adoniah_n though_o he_o be_v the_o elder_a brother_n 1_o king_n 1._o god_n by_o the_o people_n free_a suffrage_n creat_v such_o a_o man_n king_n because_o by_o the_o authoratative_a choice_n of_o the_o people_n the_o person_n be_v make_v of_o a_o private_a man_n and_o no_o king_n a_o public_a person_n and_o a_o crown_a king_n 2_o sam._n 16._o 18._o the_o man_n of_o israel_n say_v to_o gideon_n rule_v thou_o over_o we_o both_o thou_o and_o thy_o son_n and_o thy_o son_n son_n also_o and_o all_o the_o man_n of_o sechem_n make_v abimelech_n king_n judg._n 9_o 6._o so_o the_o elder_n of_o giliad_n make_v jepthah_n head_n over_o they_o judg._n 11._o 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o so_o all_o the_o people_n of_o judah_n make_v azariah_n king_n instead_o of_o his_o father_n amaziah_n 2_o king_n 14._o so_o in_o the_o change_n of_o government_n when_o israel_n not_o please_v with_o their_o government_n by_o judge_n who_o god_n himself_o have_v appoint_v over_o they_o but_o will_v have_v a_o king_n like_o other_o nation_n wherein_o god_n so_o far_o wave_v his_o prerogative_n that_o he_o comply_v with_o their_o public_a desire_n and_o gratify_v they_o therein_o though_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o samuel_n say_v unto_o all_o israel_n behold_v i_o have_v hearken_v unto_o your_o voice_n and_o in_o all_o that_o you_o say_v unto_o i_o and_o have_v make_v a_o king_n over_o you_o and_o all_o the_o congregation_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o the_o king_n behold_v the_o king_n son_n shall_v reign_v 2_o chron_n 23._o 3._o god_n himself_o by_o moses_n give_v the_o people_n power_n to_o choose_v themselves_o a_o king_n and_o withal_o direction_n and_o qualification_n who_o and_o how_o qualify_v they_o shall_v choose_v when_o thou_o shall_v say_v i_o will_v set_v a_o king_n over_o i_o like_o all_o the_o nation_n round_o about_o i_o thou_o shall_v in_o any_o wise_a set_v he_o king_n over_o thou_o who_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v choose_v i._n e._n according_a to_o his_o rule_n and_o prescription_n and_o dictate_v viz._n one_o from_o among_o thy_o brethren_n shall_v thou_o set_v king_n over_o thou_o thou_o may_v not_o set_v a_o stranger_n over_o thou_o which_o be_v not_o thy_o brother_n deut._n 17._o 15._o consider_v also_o those_o king_n who_o god_n most_o immediate_o cause_v to_o be_v anoint_v king_n and_o it_o will_v
commandment_n to_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o to_o the_o left_a to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v prolong_v his_o day_n in_o his_o kingdom_n deut._n 17._o 16_o 20._o if_o they_o so_o reign_v then_o by_o i_o king_n reign_n be_v well_o apply_v but_o if_o they_o walk_v contrary_a than_o they_o be_v no_o more_o god_n vicegerent_n but_o the_o devil_n for_o god_n never_o give_v encouragement_n to_o prince_n to_o work_v wickedness_n or_o to_o oppress_v or_o harrass_n subject_n but_o punish_v they_o for_o not_o govern_v righteous_o the_o premise_n consider_v will_v certain_o yield_v this_o undeniable_a conclusion_n that_o because_o god_n have_v give_v the_o govern_a power_n and_o instruction_n who_o to_o set_v king_n over_o they_o viz._n this_o man_n not_o that_o one_o from_o among_o their_o brethren_n not_o a_o stranger_n which_o be_v not_o their_o brother_n therefore_o the_o people_n have_v a_o power_n to_o choose_v this_o or_o that_o man_n for_o their_o king._n the_o reason_n be_v clear_a for_o that_o god_n law_n do_v not_o empower_v a_o ignis_fw-la fatuus_fw-la a_o non-ens_a nor_o can_v god_n law_n countenance_n or_o abet_v a_o unlawful_a power_n or_o a_o unlawful_a action_n but_o interdict_v it_o beside_o there_o be_v now_o no_o immediate_a inspire_v prophet_n as_o samuel_n or_o elisha_n to_o anoint_v david_n not_o eliab_n solomon_n not_o adoniah_n nor_o any_o man_n by_o nature_n law_n bear_v with_o a_o regal_a diadem_n on_o his_o head_n or_o sceptre_n in_o his_o hand_n it_o must_v necessary_o follow_v that_o king_n must_v have_v their_o power_n from_o the_o suffrage_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o govern_v if_o they_o will_v govern_v lawful_o and_o not_o be_v usurper_n and_o it_o be_v so_o from_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o public_a government_n for_o when_o the_o world_n begin_v to_o multiply_v and_o reciprocal_a injury_n injustice_n and_o oppression_n do_v increase_v among_o they_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n and_o common_a sense_n do_v dictate_v unto_o they_o that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o prevent_v and_o redress_v all_o evil_n of_o oppression_n injustice_n etc._n etc._n incident_a to_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n but_o to_o come_v to_o a_o agreement_n and_o composition_n among_o themselves_o by_o constitute_v some_o kind_n of_o public_a government_n and_o by_o submit_v themselves_o thereunto_o and_o that_o unto_o who_o they_o grant_v power_n and_o authority_n by_o they_o the_o peace_n tranquillity_n and_o happy_a estate_n of_o all_o may_v be_v procure_v man_n always_o know_v that_o when_o force_n and_o injury_n be_v do_v they_o may_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n defend_v themselves_o they_o likewise_o know_v by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n that_o howsoever_o man_n may_v seek_v their_o own_o profit_n and_o happiness_n yet_o if_o this_o be_v do_v with_o injury_n unto_o other_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v suffer_v but_o by_o all_o man_n and_o all_o good_a mean_n to_o be_v withstand_v they_o know_v also_o by_o the_o same_o light_n that_o no_o man_n may_v in_o reason_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o determine_v his_o own_o right_n and_o therefore_o debate_v and_o trouble_n will_v be_v endless_a except_o they_o give_v their_o common_a consent_n all_o to_o be_v order_v by_o some_o who_o they_o shall_v agree_v upon_o without_o which_o consent_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o one_o man_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v lord_n or_o judge_n over_o another_o and_o therefore_o for_o manifestation_n of_o this_o their_o right_n and_o peaceable_a contentment_n on_o all_o side_n the_o assent_n of_o they_o who_o be_v to_o be_v govern_v become_v absolute_o necessary_a so_o judicious_a hooker_n and_o all_o prudent_a author_n write_v of_o government_n chap._n vii_o whole_a kingdom_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o king_n deputator_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o deputy_n king_n be_v not_o immediate_o from_o god_n but_o from_o the_o people_n who_o may_v limit_v and_o bind_v royal_a power_n as_o they_o please_v the_o people_n give_v only_o their_o politic_a power_n to_o king_n reserve_v their_o natural_a power_n for_o self-preservation_n and_o happiness_n which_o they_o can_v resign_v nor_o deligate_v without_o sin_n law_n acknowledge_v no_o supremacy_n nor_o sovereignty_n but_o according_a to_o law._n covenant_n have_v be_v make_v with_o king_n both_o under_o the_o law_n and_o since_o and_o be_v equal_o bind_v both_o to_o king_n and_o people_n the_o people_n can_v absolute_o and_o unaccountable_o resign_v their_o whole_a power_n to_o king_n without_o sin_n manifest_o thereby_o break_v covenant_n first_o make_v with_o god._n see_v king_n be_v constitute_v and_o appoint_v by_o the_o people_n and_o for_o the_o people_n to_o preside_v over_o they_o and_o manage_v their_o own_o government_n and_o to_o defend_v they_o by_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o to_o fight_v their_o battle_n and_o to_o see_v that_o judgement_n be_v impartial_o and_o indifferent_o administer_v it_o natural_o and_o undeniable_o follow_v that_o whole_a kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o king_n thereof_o as_o the_o good_a of_o the_o whole_a be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o good_a of_o any_o part_n mr._n john_n turner_n in_o his_o sermon_n september_n 9_o 1683._o though_o he_o extend_v passive_a obedience_n and_o prerogative_n far_o beyond_o their_o just_a limit_n yet_o ingenious_o confess_v that_o the_o interest_n of_o nation_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o interest_n or_o welfare_n of_o any_o one_o man_n and_o ground_n it_o on_o the_o prophecy_n of_o caiphas_n john_n 11._o 45_o 50._o that_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o one_o man_n shall_v die_v for_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a nation_n perish_v not_o which_o he_o account_v a_o sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n that_o be_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n himself_o that_o a_o great_a interest_n of_o mankind_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o a_o lesser_a p._n 20_o 21._o such_o force_n there_o be_v in_o confer_v authority_n that_o they_o who_o receive_v authority_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v esteem_v inferior_a to_o those_o who_o give_v they_o potiphar_n the_o egyptian_a set_v joseph_n over_o all_o his_o family_n nebuchadnezar_n set_v daniel_n over_o all_o the_o province_n of_o babylon_n dan._n 2._o 48._o darius_n set_v one_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o precedent_n over_o his_o kingdom_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o divest_v themselves_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o their_o own_o power_n and_o authority_n so_o the_o people_n set_v king_n over_o they_o as_o chief_a minister_n of_o their_o government_n without_o divest_v themselves_o of_o the_o virtual_a power_n and_o dominion_n thereof_o which_o title_n of_o minister_n good_a king_n refuse_v not_o to_o acknowledge_v but_o embrace_v and_o for_o some_o age_n among_o the_o roman_a emperor_n none_o unless_o manifest_a tyrant_n such_o as_o nero_n domitian_n caligula_n will_v be_v call_v lord_n and_o therefore_o holy_a writ_n style_v they_o shepherd_n to_o feed_v they_o psalm_n 78._o 79_o 71_o 72._o captain_n to_o defend_v they_o and_o go_v in_o and_o out_o before_o they_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o their_o good_a rom._n 13._o 4._o nursing-fathers_n to_o carry_v they_o in_o their_o bosom_n as_o a_o nursing-father_n bear_v the_o suck_a child_n numb_a 11._o 12._o isaiah_n 49._o 23._o a_o kingdom_n or_o commonwealth_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o a_o ship_n where_o the_o master_n choose_v the_o pilot_n who_o be_v choose_v to_o steer_v the_o ship_n in_o its_o right_a course_n that_o it_o strike_v not_o on_o the_o sand_n nor_o against_o the_o rock_n in_o which_o employment_n as_o all_o the_o rest_n so_o the_o master_n himself_o obey_v and_o submit_v to_o the_o pilot_n who_o notwithstanding_o be_v servant_n to_o the_o ship_n and_o to_o the_o master_n so_o king_n be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o govern_v but_o the_o people_n in_o the_o place_n or_o right_v of_o dominion_n beside_o a_o commonwealth_n when_o christian_a be_v the_o inheritance_n and_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n psalm_n 105._o 15._o make_v of_o the_o same_o mould_n redeem_v with_o the_o same_o precious_a blood_n as_o king_n be_v act._n 20._o 28._o and_o who_o death_n be_v precious_a in_o his_o sight_n and_o the_o destruction_n but_o of_o one_o of_o they_o be_v the_o violation_n of_o god_n own_o image_n gen._n 9_o 6._o and_o therefore_o the_o death_n and_o destruction_n of_o a_o kingdom_n consider_v as_o a_o church_n of_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o man_n be_v of_o more_o concern_v with_o the_o almighty_a than_o the_o death_n of_o a_o king._n for_o king_n be_v not_o god_n inheritance_n nor_o his_o choose_a nor_o the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n nor_o the_o redeem_a of_o his_o son_n because_o king_n but_o as_o they_o be_v the_o create_a image_n of_o god_n in_o common_a with_o all_o other_o man_n their_o subject_n and_o all_o those_o high_a and_o mighty_a title_n prerogative_n and_o privilege_n by_o which_o they_o
oblige_v to_o the_o people_n for_o the_o just_a performance_n of_o the_o same_o omnis_fw-la promittens_fw-la facit_fw-la alteri_fw-la cui_fw-la promissio_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la jus_o in_fw-la promittentem_fw-la whoever_o make_v a_o promise_n to_o another_o give_v to_o that_o other_o a_o right_n or_o jurisdiction_n to_o challenge_v the_o performance_n of_o the_o same_o promise_n but_o if_o rehoboam_n will_v make_v his_o little_a finger_n thick_a than_o his_o father_n loin_n and_o chastise_v israel_n not_o with_o whip_n only_o but_o with_o scorpion_n and_o will_v send_v adoram_n to_o gather_v tribute_n without_o the_o common_a and_o free_a consent_n of_o israel_n israel_n will_v stone_n such_o minister_n to_o death_n and_o will_v rebel_v as_o in_o the_o text_n or_o fall_v away_o as_o in_o the_o margin_n recesset_fw-la say_v st._n jerom_n defecerunt_fw-la say_v junius_n and_o tremelius_fw-la from_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o will_v make_v jeroboam_n king_n over_o all_o israel_n as_o they_o just_o may_v and_o without_o the_o just_a imputation_n of_o rebellion_n and_o though_o rehoboam_n do_v raise_v 180000_o man_n intend_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n to_o bring_v the_o kingdom_n again_o to_o rehoboam_n the_o son_n of_o solomon_n yet_o god_n will_v countenance_v no_o such_o act_n and_o therefore_o forbid_v they_o by_o shemaiah_n the_o man_n of_o god_n 1_o king_n 12._o 19_o 2_o chron._n 11._o 12._o which_o demonstrate_v that_o if_o king_n keep_v not_o covenant_n with_o their_o people_n they_o may_v withdraw_v their_o tribute_n and_o obedience_n and_o choose_v another_o king_n or_o another_o government_n and_o be_v no_o rebel_n this_o be_v not_o to_o assert_v or_o justify_v that_o for_o every_o act_n of_o male_a government_n or_o a_o few_o act_n of_o tyranny_n or_o oppression_n king_n may_v be_v dethrone_v and_o devest_v of_o their_o royal_a power_n but_o upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o violence_n oppression_n and_o tyranny_n be_v of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o that_o thereby_o the_o whole_a intention_n and_o end_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o agreement_n make_v with_o the_o people_n for_o the_o government_n of_o themselves_o viz._n the_o safety_n of_o the_o people_n the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v thereby_o endanger_v to_o be_v frustrate_v and_o that_o on_o presumption_n of_o such_o usage_n and_o outrage_n the_o people_n will_v never_o have_v confer_v their_o crown_n upon_o they_o david_n hold_v saul_n for_o his_o prince_n and_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o lord_n be_v anoint_v so_o long_o as_o the_o people_n have_v not_o recall_v their_o grant_n of_o royal_a dignity_n so_o that_o no_o single_a person_n though_o six_o hundred_o man_n with_o he_o may_v lawful_o assassinate_n any_o king._n all_o government_n be_v liken_v to_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gordian_a knot_n which_o if_o not_o so_o hard_o tie_v but_o that_o the_o people_n may_v have_v some_o ease_n some_o relaxation_n they_o ordinary_o be_v willing_a to_o endure_v some_o reasonable_a bond_n but_o if_o excessive_a they_o ever_o have_v and_o i_o doubt_v ever_o will_v endeavour_v to_o free_v themselves_o though_o by_o mean_n indirect_a if_o the_o people_n as_o god_n instrument_n crown_n king_n on_o condition_n that_o he_o will_v rule_v they_o according_a to_o god_n word_n then_o be_v king_n make_v king_n by_o the_o people_n conditional_o and_o be_v but_o adopt_v father_n tutor_n politic_a servant_n or_o royal_a watch_n man_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o the_o royal_a honour_n and_o royal_a tribute_n give_v to_o they_o be_v reward_n of_o their_o labour_n and_o kingly_a hire_n and_o so_o express_v by_o paul_n rom._n 13._o 6._o for_o this_o cause_n pay_v you_o tribute_n also_o there_o be_v their_o wage_n for_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n attend_v continual_o upon_o this_o very_a thing_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la implet_fw-la conditionem_fw-la a_o se_fw-la promissam_fw-la cadit_fw-la beneficio_fw-la the_o people_n set_v of_o king_n over_o themselves_o be_v a_o act_n warrant_v by_o god_n himself_o deut._n 17._o 15._o rom._n 13._o 1_o 2._o which_o act_n though_o do_v without_o write_a condition_n or_o oath_n and_o only_o by_o a_o vive_fw-fr le_fw-fr roy_fw-fr or_o god_n save_o the_o king_n yet_o even_o such_o choice_n can_v never_o be_v understand_v or_o interpret_v a_o investiture_n of_o they_o with_o a_o absolute_a but_o with_o a_o conditional_a power_n for_o that_o such_o a_o power_n be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n a_o preposterous_a and_o absurd_a power_n to_o do_v good_a and_o yet_o to_o work_v wickedness_n impune_fw-la beside_o the_o common_a law_n of_o mankind_n allow_v all_o donor_n to_o interpret_v and_o expound_v their_o own_o meaning_n why_o they_o crown_v king_n over_o they_o and_o why_o they_o give_v such_o large_a tribute_n so_o great_a privilege_n and_o prerogative_n and_o certain_o they_o will_v never_o interpret_v that_o they_o confer_v royal_a power_n on_o they_o to_o oppress_v persecute_v and_o destroy_v themselves_o without_o control_n and_o leave_v themselves_o without_o a_o remedy_n the_o covenant_n make_v by_o asa_n and_o all_o judah_n and_o benjamin_n 2_o chron._n 15._o 13._o that_o whosoever_o will_v not_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o their_o father_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n whether_o small_a or_o great_a man_n or_o woman_n which_o do_v equal_o oblige_v the_o king_n as_o also_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n to_o performance_n and_o therefore_o asa_n as_o in_o duty_n bind_v remove_v maacha_n his_o mother_n from_o be_v queen_n because_o she_o have_v make_v a_o idol_n in_o a_o grove_n which_o asa_n also_o cut_v down_o stamp_v it_o and_o burn_v it_o at_o the_o brook_n kidron_n verse_n 14._o diodorus_n siculus_n lib._n 17._o say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n be_v under_o a_o oath_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o change_v the_o law_n and_o so_o be_v the_o king_n of_o egypt_n and_o aethiopia_n the_o king_n of_o sparta_n which_o aristotle_n call_v just_a king_n renew_v their_o oath_n every_o month._n romulus_n so_o covenant_v with_o the_o senate_n and_o people_n carolus_n v._o austriachus_fw-la swear_v he_o shall_v not_o change_v the_o law_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o elector_n nor_o make_v new_a law_n nor_o dispose_v of_o any_o thing_n of_o great_a concern_v belong_v to_o the_o empire_n without_o the_o public_a consent_n 1_o sam._n 8._o 11._o this_o will_v be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o king_n who_o shall_v reign_v over_o you_o which_o place_n be_v bring_v to_o prove_v the_o absolute_a power_n of_o king_n and_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o resistance_n which_o word_n be_v right_o interpret_v can_v have_v no_o such_o meaning_n it_o only_o declare_v what_o the_o manner_n and_o custom_n be_v what_o they_o will_v do_v not_o what_o of_o right_n they_o may_v do_v for_o god_n have_v long_o before_o in_o deuteronomy_n prescribe_v they_o what_o law_n they_o shall_v govern_v by_o and_o in_o this_o place_n be_v only_o describe_v the_o tyranny_n of_o king_n what_o they_o will_v do_v not_o what_o they_o may_v just_o do_v and_o to_o aver_v that_o god_n have_v give_v power_n to_o king_n to_o tyrannize_v worry_v oppress_v and_o destroy_v subject_n be_v blasphemy_n for_o god_n have_v not_o give_v nor_o can_v give_v any_o moral_a power_n to_o do_v wicked_o which_o be_v licence_n to_o sin_n against_o his_o own_o law_n which_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o his_o holiness_n and_o therefore_o no_o such_o power_n can_v be_v from_o god._n and_o all_o best_a expositor_n declare_v the_o law_n of_o king_n to_o be_v describe_v in_o deut._n 17._o and_o in_o 1_o sam._n 8._o be_v describe_v the_o usurpation_n and_o tyranny_n of_o king_n so_o it_o only_o demonstrate_v their_o wicked_a usage_n or_o custom_n not_o a_o law_n prescribe_v by_o god._n and_o it_o be_v obvious_a to_o common_a sense_n that_o god_n by_o his_o prophet_n in_o this_o place_n be_v not_o instruct_v king_n in_o their_o duty_n but_o by_o foretell_v the_o israelite_n the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n that_o they_o shall_v suffer_v under_o tyrannous_a king_n thereby_o terrify_v they_o if_o possible_a from_o their_o wicked_a purpose_n of_o seek_v a_o king_n and_o thereby_o reject_v not_o samuel_n only_o but_o god_n himself_o and_o far_o menace_v and_o declare_v that_o in_o the_o day_n when_o they_o shall_v cry_v out_o because_o of_o their_o king_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o hear_v they_o verse_n 18._o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v protest_v against_o their_o unlawful_a course_n yet_o nothing_o at_o all_o will_v prevail_v nay_o but_o we_o will_v have_v a_o king_n over_o we_o verse_n 19_o if_o samuel_n in_o this_o place_n do_v not_o dehort_v they_o from_o kingly_a government_n how_o can_v they_o be_v say_v to_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o samuel_n in_o sum_n all_o god_n covenant_n be_v yea_o and_o amen_o and_o so_o ought_v his_o vicegerent_n to_o be_v and_o for_o priest_n to_o
of_o the_o lord_n renew_v the_o covenant_n viz._n if_o you_o will_v fear_v the_o lord_n and_o serve_v he_o and_o obey_v his_o voice_n and_o not_o rebel_v against_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n then_o shall_v both_o you_o and_o also_o the_o king_n that_o reign_v over_o you_o continue_v follow_v the_o lord_n your_o god._n but_o if_o you_o shall_v still_o do_v wicked_o you_o shall_v be_v consume_v both_o you_o and_o your_o king_n 1_o sam._n 12._o 14_o 15_o 25._o by_o wickedness_n in_o this_o place_n be_v most_o especial_o mean_v in_o that_o they_o have_v reject_v the_o government_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v appoint_v as_o best_a for_o they_o and_o choose_v a_o king_n to_o be_v set_v over_o they_o and_o we_o rebel_v against_o god._n the_o reason_n assign_v be_v because_o they_o be_v god_n own_o peculiar_a people_n hereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o both_o king_n and_o people_n be_v both_o equal_o join_v in_o the_o stipulation_n so_o asa_n king_n of_o judah_n by_o the_o prophecy_n of_o azariah_n the_o prophet_n congregat_v all_o the_o people_n viz._n judah_n and_o benjamin_n where_o be_v also_o many_o of_o ephraim_n manasseh_n and_o simeon_n and_o make_v a_o solemn_a covenant_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o their_o father_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o their_o soul_n that_o whoever_o will_v not_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n whether_o small_a or_o great_a man_n or_o woman_n 2_o chron._n 15._o 12_o 13._o deut._n 13._o 9_o &_o 17._o 7._o here_o you_o see_v the_o king_n himself_o be_v not_o exempt_v these_o example_n with_o those_o before_o and_o those_o that_o follow_v will_v justify_v this_o kingdom_n in_o all_o that_o they_o have_v do_v to_o free_v we_o from_o unreasonable_a and_o cruel_a man_n and_o popish_a tyranny_n and_o also_o the_o auxiliary_a expedition_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o orange_n to_o be_v the_o most_o glorious_a and_o most_o righteous_a action_n that_o ever_o prince_n undertake_v because_o he_o come_v to_o help_v the_o lord_n against_o the_o mighty_a who_o both_o at_o home_n and_o abroad_o have_v in_o their_o imagination_n and_o endeavour_n design_v the_o enslave_v of_o all_o the_o protestant_n of_o europe_n which_o action_n god_n have_v hitherto_o signalise_v by_o prosper_v his_o arm_n with_o very_o little_a blood._n whoso_o be_v wise_a and_o will_v observe_v these_o thing_n shall_v understand_v the_o love_a kindness_n of_o the_o lord_n psalm_n 107._o chap._n x._o whole_a kingdom_n and_o nation_n have_v power_n to_o reform_v i'faith_o equal_o plight_v between_o king_n and_o people_n ought_v equal_o to_o be_v keep_v care_v of_o religion_n peace_n justice_n safety_n liberty_n etc._n etc._n be_v incumbent_n on_o all_o the_o people_n especial_o on_o the_o ordines_fw-la populi_n the_o common_a and_o true_a cause_n of_o rebellion_n be_v abuse_v of_o power_n not_o disobedience_n to_o the_o lawful_a command_n of_o king_n obedience_n to_o unjust_a command_n of_o caesar_n be_v sin_n and_o to_o assist_v in_o such_o be_v to_o make_v themselves_o participes_fw-la criminis_fw-la opposition_n to_o pope_n or_o king_n tyrannize_v be_v not_o rebellion_n against_o christ_n vicar_n or_o vicegerent_n but_o opposition_n to_o wicked_a man_n act_v wicked_o defensive_a arm_n justify_v by_o authority_n now_o who_o shall_v have_v power_n to_o reform_v thing_n do_v amiss_o by_o king_n but_o all_o the_o people_n to_o who_o he_o have_v swear_v as_o solemn_o as_o they_o to_o he_o and_o both_o to_o god_n almighty_a who_o be_v witness_n between_o they_o so_o josiah_n the_o king_n with_o the_o priest_n prophet_n and_o all_o the_o people_n both_o small_a and_o great_a go_v up_o into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o make_v a_o covenant_n before_o the_o lord_n to_o walk_v after_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o the_o people_n stand_v to_o the_o covenant_n 2._o king._n 23._o 2_o 3_o 4._o why_o shall_v the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o people_n be_v so_o solemn_o require_v why_o shall_v israel_n and_o judah_n be_v so_o strict_o oblige_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n holy_a law_n and_o commandment_n why_o shall_v they_o so_o sacred_o promise_v to_o be_v the_o lord_n people_n unless_o power_n and_o authority_n be_v give_v to_o they_o also_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o covenant_n break_v and_o from_o perjury_n and_o to_o defend_v holy_a church_n wherefore_o be_v a_o covenant_n make_v with_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n zealous_a of_o good_a work_n if_o they_o must_v obey_v the_o unjust_a command_n of_o king_n it_o may_v be_v to_o worship_v strange_a god_n or_o to_o permit_v monstrous_a sin_n to_o reign_v among_o they_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o put_v to_o their_o assistance_n and_o endeavour_v to_o hinder_v and_o reform_v and_o why_o shall_v they_o be_v blame_v or_o judgement_n pour_v upon_o they_o if_o they_o have_v no_o power_n from_o on_o high_a to_o perform_v what_o be_v so_o solemn_o require_v and_o so_o solemn_o promise_v that_o god_n shall_v so_o solemn_o require_v their_o vow_n and_o promise_v and_o yet_o not_o give_v they_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o perform_v be_v monstrous_a to_o conceive_v god_n never_o require_v more_o than_o he_o give_v brick_n without_o straw_n that_o be_v the_o property_n of_o pharaoh_n and_o his_o hard_a taskmaster_n it_o be_v much_o more_o agreeable_a to_o truth_n that_o all_o covenant_n of_o like_a nature_n and_o purport_n be_v equal_o oblige_v both_o to_o king_n and_o people_n and_o the_o care_n and_o authority_n of_o each_o over_o the_o other_o for_o adjust_v of_o performance_n be_v reciprocal_a and_o equal_a it_o be_v a_o gospel_n principle_n that_o god_n peculiar_a people_n which_o be_v his_o true_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v solicitous_a not_o only_o to_o abstain_v from_o evil_a themselves_o but_o also_o to_o prevent_v it_o in_o otheer_n a_o notable_a example_n whereof_o be_v before_o mention_v in_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n josh_n 22._o who_o out_o of_o abundant_a caution_n mind_v the_o concern_v of_o their_o brethren_n as_o their_o own_o when_o they_o hear_v that_o the_o reubenites_n gadites_n and_o half_a the_o tribe_n of_o manasseh_n have_v erect_v a_o altar_n not_o for_o worship_v as_o they_o true_o protest_v but_o for_o memorial_n and_o witness_n so_o fearful_a they_o be_v of_o god_n wrath_n fall_v on_o they_o that_o they_o soon_o dispatch_v a_o embassy_n to_o their_o brethren_n to_o prevent_v their_o sin_n as_o before_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o prophet_n of_o old_a stand_n in_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o child_n of_o the_o people_n whereby_o their_o king_n come_v in_o and_o by_o which_o they_o go_v out_o do_v so_o often_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o of_o keep_v covenant_n and_o not_o only_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o sacrifice_v to_o baal_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v destroy_v both_o baal_n and_o his_o priest_n and_o root_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n whether_o the_o king_n will_v or_o no_o for_o when_o ahab_n have_v kill_v the_o prophet_n of_o god_n eliah_n the_o prophet_n congregat_v all_o israel_n not_o tumultuous_o but_o by_o public_a authority_n and_o common_a consent_n unto_o mount_n carmel_n and_o the_o prophet_n of_o baal_n four_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o and_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o grove_n four_o hundred_o which_o do_v eat_v at_o jezabels_n table_n and_o have_v convince_v they_o of_o their_o idolatry_n and_o to_o be_v false_a prophet_n the_o people_n at_o his_o command_n kill_v they_o all_o at_o the_o brook_n kishon_n 1_o king._n 18._o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o king_n neglect_v his_o duty_n all_o israel_n as_o oblige_v ought_v to_o discharge_v they_o on_o the_o contrary_a as_o often_o as_o king_n violate_v their_o covenant_n or_o profane_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n as_o we_o say_v before_o of_o covenant_n where_o the_o breach_n of_o one_o party_n manifest_o prejudice_v the_o other_o covenanter_n threaten_v ruin_n and_o destruction_n to_o the_o innocent_a through_o negligence_n sinful_a connivance_n or_o any_o other_o sinister_a by-end_n or_o respect_n do_v not_o restrain_v he_o their_o judgement_n come_v also_o upon_o the_o people_n as_o well_o for_o their_o non-performance_n as_o on_o king_n for_o they_o which_o most_o happen_v for_o that_o the_o people_n be_v more_o apt_a to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o their_o king_n than_o to_o repent_v and_o amend_v or_o mind_v he_o of_o the_o error_n of_o his_o way_n wherefore_o do_v the_o host_n of_o israel_n with_o saul_n and_o his_o two_o son_n fall_v down_o slay_v in_o mount_n gilboa_n by_o the_o philistine_n 1_o sam._n 31._o will_v god_n think_v you_o revenge_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o king_n upon_o the_o people_n if_o innocent_a far_o be_v it_o from_o the_o judge_n of_o all_o
the_o earth_n to_o stay_v the_o righteous_a with_o the_o wicked_a gen._n 18._o 25._o or_o take_v vengeance_n on_o the_o people_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o king_n the_o soul_n that_o sin_v it_o shall_v die_v ezek._n 18._o 4._o every_o man_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o his_o own_o sin_n deut._n 24_o 16._o be_v it_o not_o rather_o because_o the_o people_n do_v not_o resist_v or_o restrain_v but_o assist_v saul_n their_o king_n violate_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o wicked_o persecute_v the_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n and_o kill_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n saul_n desire_v to_o enlarge_v they_o border_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n at_o his_o entrance_n into_o canaan_n break_v public_a faith_n with_o the_o gibeonite_n and_o destroy_v many_o of_o they_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n have_v swear_v unto_o they_o by_o which_o he_o break_v the_o three_o commandment_n god_n be_v witness_n to_o his_o covenant_n with_o the_o gibeonite_n he_o break_v also_o the_o six_o commandment_n and_o so_o the_o breach_n of_o both_o table_n god_n himself_o will_v revenge_v the_o breach_n of_o which_o covenant_n and_o oath_n be_v just_o lay_v to_o saul_n and_o his_o family_n now_o saul_n be_v dead_a and_o david_n constitute_v king_n 2_o sam._n 21._o 1_o 2._o god_n send_v a_o famine_n in_o the_o day_n of_o david_n three_o year_n year_n after_o year_n upon_o the_o whole_a land_n and_o david_n inquire_v of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n answer_v it_o be_v for_o saul_n and_o his_o bloody_a house_n because_o he_o slay_v the_o gibeonite_n which_o famine_n cease_v not_o till_o david_n deliver_v seven_o son_n of_o saul_n to_o the_o gibeonite_n who_o they_o hang_v in_o gibeah_n of_o saul_n unto_o the_o lord_n v_o 6._o 8._o but_o be_v the_o famine_n over_o all_o the_o land_n for_o saul_n fault_n only_o no_o both_o king_n and_o people_n be_v both_o punish_v the_o one_o for_o break_v covenant_n the_o other_o for_o not_o resist_v and_o not_o hinder_v the_o king_n or_o as_o be_v accessary_a to_o do_v this_o evil._n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o god_n never_o punish_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o king_n upon_o the_o people_n nor_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n upon_o the_o king_n and_o yet_o he_o send_v a_o famine_n on_o the_o whole_a land_n saul_n the_o chief_a actor_n be_v dead_a and_o consequent_o actio_fw-la moritur_fw-la cum_fw-la persona_fw-la but_o because_o the_o people_n suffer_v so_o manifest_a a_o sin_n to_o be_v commit_v by_o their_o sinful_a connivance_n and_o use_v no_o endeavour_n to_o resist_v or_o hinder_v he_o as_o they_o ought_v can_n punishment_n by_o any_o right_a be_v inflict_v on_o any_o for_o a_o crime_n whereof_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a alieni_fw-la secleris_fw-la quenquam_fw-la poenas_fw-la pati_fw-la jura_n non_fw-la sinunt_fw-la 2_o king_n 14._o 6._o wherein_o do_v the_o israelite_n sin_n if_o not_o by_o tolerate_v saul_n to_o do_v as_o he_o do_v when_o they_o ought_v and_o may_v have_v hinder_v he_o when_o menasseh_n have_v pollute_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n which_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o pardon_v 2_o king_n 24._o 4._o why_o do_v the_o lord_n threaten_v not_o only_a menasseh_n but_o his_o people_n with_o judgement_n but_o because_o they_o be_v under_o the_o same_o covenant_n with_o manasseh_n they_o will_v not_o restrain_v the_o king_n from_o persist_v in_o his_o wickedness_n but_o do_v connive_v countenance_n and_o assist_v he_o in_o his_o impiety_n 2_o chron._n 33._o 17._o herod_n and_o pilate_n condemn_v christ_n the_o priest_n deliver_v he_o to_o death_n yet_o the_o curse_n fall_v upon_o the_o whole_a nation_n and_o why_o because_o the_o people_n may_v have_v deliver_v he_o as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v barrabas_n and_o do_v not_o but_o impricate_v curse_n upon_o themselves_o and_o their_o child_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o nation_n to_o take_v care_v not_o only_o that_o criminal_n be_v punish_v but_o that_o no_o crime_n be_v commit_v which_o make_v hezekiah_n pull_v down_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n though_o set_v up_o by_o moses_n when_o it_o come_v to_o be_v abuse_v 2_o king_n 18._o 4._o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o people_n by_o common_a consent_n to_o hinder_v king_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v from_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o from_o injure_v his_o church_n and_o saint_n and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o crime_n and_o liable_a to_o the_o same_o punishment_n resist_v they_o may_v by_o oppose_a word_n to_o word_n force_n to_o force_n stratagem_n to_o stratagem_n always_o avoid_v perfidiousness_n which_o be_v always_o disallow_v and_o hateful_a to_o god_n and_o man._n for_o in_o war_n it_o matter_n not_o whether_o it_o be_v manage_v by_o open_a force_n or_o secret_a stratagem_n by_o people_n be_v not_o mean_v the_o many_o headed-monster-multitude_n but_o by_o the_o universal_a people_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v those_o who_o have_v any_o share_n in_o the_o government_n or_o any_o authority_n from_o the_o people_n confer_v upon_o they_o by_o any_o law_n make_v by_o public_a consent_n as_o inferior_a magistrate_n either_o choose_v by_o the_o people_n or_o any_o other_o way_n constitute_v to_o take_v care_n of_o public_a peace_n and_o concern_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o their_o several_a qualification_n be_v they_o tribune_n of_o the_o people_n ephori_fw-la praefect_n praetor_n judge_n justice_n of_o the_o peace_n constable_n captain_n of_o thousand_o captain_n of_o hundred_o captain_n of_o fifty_n or_o other_o inferior_a officer_n or_o magistrate_n which_o be_v as_o consort_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o be_v in_o the_o vacancy_n of_o the_o public_a sanhedrim_n diet_n parliament_n etc._n etc._n as_o it_o be_v the_o epitome_n of_o every_o kingdom_n and_o ephori_fw-la of_o king_n and_o conservator_n of_o the_o public_a peace_n thereof_o to_o and_o among_o who_o all_o the_o public_a concern_v of_o a_o nation_n be_v refer_v of_o which_o sort_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v the_o seventy_o elder_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n among_o which_o there_o be_v a_o chief_a priest_n which_o do_v judge_v the_o arduis_fw-la regni_fw-la which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hobby-horsed_n in_o and_o out_o by_o the_o high_a priest_n according_a as_o they_o will_v or_o will_v not_o serve_v a_o sinister_a turn_n and_o they_o be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o seventy_o family_n which_o go_v down_o into_o egypt_n the_o elder_n of_o which_o be_v first_o choose_v and_o make_v head_n over_o the_o people_n ruler_n of_o thousand_o ruler_n of_o hundred_o ruler_n of_o ten_o and_o the_o hard_a cause_n they_o bring_v unto_o moses_n exod._n 18._o 25._o we_o read_v often_o in_o scripture_n of_o all_o israel_n of_o all_o judah_n and_o benjamin_n etc._n etc._n when_o in_o all_o probability_n every_o individual_a do_v not_o at_o all_o time_n meet_v of_o which_o sort_n and_o kind_n there_o be_v in_o all_o well_o constitute_v kingdom_n several_a congregation_n of_o the_o kingdom_n officer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o the_o privy_a council_n peer_n patrician_n judges_z session_n assizes_n lord_n lieutenant_n deputy_n lieutenant_n mayor_n bayliff_n of_o town_n and_o city_n as_o the_o ordinary_a council_n and_o officer_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o as_o council_n extraordinary_a choose_v out_o of_o they_o all_o to_o consider_v de_fw-fr arduis_fw-la regni_fw-la which_o be_v officer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o call_v by_o several_a name_n in_o several_a kingdom_n as_o diet_n parliament_n etc._n etc._n which_o provide_v that_o no_o detriment_n come_v to_o either_o church_n or_o state_n in_o which_o though_o every_o individual_a be_v inferior_a to_o the_o king_n yet_o the_o joint_a body_n be_v the_o representative_a of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n be_v superior_a and_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o he_o for_o as_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o constance_n decree_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o chapter_n to_o the_o bishop_n for_o that_o they_o which_o receive_v any_o authority_n from_o any_o company_n of_o man_n must_v needs_o be_v inferior_a to_o that_o company_n though_o he_o be_v personal_o superior_a to_o every_o individual_a of_o that_o society_n so_o without_o all_o doubt_n israel_n which_o petition_v for_o and_o choose_v saul_n from_o among_o themselves_o to_o be_v their_o king_n as_o a_o public_a actor_n for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o they_o all_o be_v superior_a to_o saul_n when_o we_o attribute_v any_o power_n to_o the_o people_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o officer_n prince_n elder_n parliament_n diet_n that_o have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o government_n and_o in_o the_o legislative_a power_n take_v athaliah_n 2_o chron._n 24._o for_o a_o example_n in_o which_o act_n the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o oppose_v but_o
be_v art._n 42._o expl._n f._n 84._o so_o god_n by_o jeremy_n threaten_v to_o destroy_v the_o man_n of_o judah_n and_o jerusalem_n for_o that_o they_o suffer_v their_o king_n manasseh_n to_o be_v unpunished_a king._n 4._o 21._o jer._n 15._o and_o yet_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n have_v no_o declare_a sovereignty_n over_o their_o king_n but_o only_o a_o tacit_a and_o imply_v sovereignty_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n so_o when_o saul_n will_v have_v put_v jonathan_n his_o son_n to_o death_n the_o people_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o so_o to_o do_v but_o deliver_v jonathan_n that_o he_o die_v not_o 1_o sam._n 14._o when_o david_n purpose_v the_o reduce_n of_o the_o ark_n his_o speech_n to_o the_o people_n be_v if_o it_o please_v you_o we_o will_v send_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o brethren_n that_o they_o may_v assemble_v themselves_o unto_o we_o and_o all_o the_o congregation_n say_v that_o they_o will_v do_v so_o for_o the_o thing_n be_v right_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o people_n 1_o chron._n 18._o after_o solomon_n death_n all_o the_o congregation_n of_o israel_n say_v to_o rehoboam_n 1_o king_n 12._o make_v thy_o father_n yoke_n which_o he_o put_v upon_o we_o light_a and_o we_o will_v serve_v thou_o because_o it_o lay_v in_o their_o choice_n to_o subject_n or_o free_a from_o the_o king_n power_n the_o people_n likewise_o take_v jeremy_n when_o he_o have_v prophesy_v against_o they_o and_o say_v thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n jer._n 26._o and_o afterward_o reverse_v their_o sentence_n upon_o jeremy_n declare_v that_o the_o word_n he_o speak_v be_v command_v from_o god._n bilson_n 514_o 517._o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o lantzgrave_n answer_v the_o emperor_n forasmuch_o as_o cesar_n intend_v to_o destroy_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o our_o ancient_a liberty_n he_o give_v we_o cause_n enough_o why_o we_o may_v with_o good_a conscience_n resist_v he_o as_o both_o by_o profane_a and_o sacred_a history_n may_v be_v prove_v the_o minister_n of_o magdeburgh_n delcare_v how_o the_o inferior_a may_v defend_v themselves_o against_o the_o superior_a compel_v he_o to_o do_v against_o the_o truth_n and_o rule_n of_o christ_n law_n the_o german_a lawyer_n make_v evident_a demonstration_n that_o the_o free_a state_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n may_v defend_v their_o liberty_n against_o cesar_n to_o who_o they_o be_v subject_a with_o that_o condition_n so_o may_v any_o other_o nation_n if_o their_o magistrate_n infringe_v their_o law_n and_o liberty_n in_o the_o trouble_v of_o germany_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1546._o when_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o lantzgrave_n be_v prescribe_v or_o outlawed_n they_o remonstrate_v that_o if_o the_o emperor_n have_v keep_v his_o covenant_n they_o will_v have_v do_v their_o duty_n but_o because_o he_o begin_v first_o to_o make_v the_o breach_n the_o fault_n be_v he_o for_o since_o he_o attempt_v to_o root_v out_o religion_n and_o subvert_v our_o liberty_n he_o give_v we_o cause_n enough_o to_o resist_v he_o with_o good_a conscience_n matter_n stand_v as_o they_o do_v we_o may_v resist_v as_o may_v be_v show_v both_o by_o sacred_a and_o profane_a story_n unjust_a violence_n be_v not_o god_n ordinance_n neither_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o he_o by_o any_o other_o reason_n than_o if_o he_o keep_v the_o condition_n on_o which_o he_o be_v create_v emperor_n sleid._n 18._o p._n 212_o 213._o so_o the_o magistrate_n and_o minister_n of_o magdeburgh_n declare_v that_o if_o our_o religion_n and_o liberty_n leave_v we_o by_o our_o forefather_n be_v preserve_v we_o refuse_v no_o kind_n of_o duty_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v yield_v unto_o cesar_n or_o the_o empire_n now_o by_o the_o law_n themselves_o it_o be_v provide_v that_o the_o inferior_a magistrate_n shall_v not_o infringe_v the_o right_n of_o the_o superior_a and_o so_o likewise_o if_o the_o magistrate_n exceed_v the_o limit_n of_o his_o power_n and_o command_v that_o which_o be_v wicked_a we_o need_v not_o only_o not_o obey_v he_o but_o if_o he_o offer_v force_v we_o may_v resist_v he_o lib._n 22._o p._n 266._o anno_fw-la 1550._o if_o a_o prince_n shall_v go_v about_o to_o subject_v his_o kingdom_n to_o a_o foreign_a realm_n or_o change_v the_o form_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n from_o empery_n to_o tyranny_n or_o neglect_v the_o law_n establish_v by_o common_a consent_n of_o prince_n and_o people_n to_o execute_v his_o own_o pleasure_n in_o these_o and_o other_o case_n which_o may_v be_v name_v if_o the_o noble_n and_o commons_o join_v together_o to_o defend_v their_o ancient_n and_o accustom_a liberty_n regiment_n and_o law_n they_o may_v not_o well_o be_v account_v rebel_n modest_o express_v bill_n 520._o the_o people_n may_v preserve_v the_o foundation_n freedom_n and_o form_n of_o their_o commonwealth_n which_o they_o fore_o prize_v when_o they_o first_o consent_v to_o have_v a_o king_n the_o law_n of_o god_n give_v no_o man_n leave_v to_o resist_v his_o prince_n but_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n may_v proportion_v their_o state_n as_o they_o think_v best_a by_o their_o public_a law_n which_o afterward_o the_o prince_n themselves_o may_v not_o violate_v by_o superior_a power_n ordain_v by_o god_n we_o understand_v not_o only_a prince_n but_o all_o politic_a state_n and_o regiment_n some_o where_o the_o people_n some_o where_o the_o noble_n have_v the_o same_o interest_n to_o the_o sword_n that_o prince_n have_v in_o their_o kingdom_n and_o in_o kingdom_n where_o prince_n beat_v rule_n by_o the_o sword_n we_o do_v not_o mean_v the_o prince_n private_a will_n against_o his_o law_n but_o his_o precept_n derive_v from_o his_o law_n and_o agree_v with_o his_o law_n which_o though_o it_o be_v wicked_a yet_o may_v it_o not_o be_v resist_v of_o any_o subject_a with_o arm_a violence_n many_o when_o prince_n offer_v their_o subject_n not_o justice_n but_o force_n and_o despise_v all_o law_n to_o practise_v their_o lust_n not_o every_o nor_o any_o private_a man_n may_v take_v the_o sword_n to_o redress_v the_o prince_n but_o if_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n appoint_v the_o noble_n as_o next_o to_o the_o king_n to_o assist_v he_o in_o do_v right_a and_o withhold_v he_o from_o do_v wrong_n then_o be_v they_o license_v by_o man_n law_n and_o so_o not_o prohibit_v by_o god_n to_o interpose_v themselves_o for_o the_o safeguard_n of_o equity_n and_o innocency_n and_o by_o all_o lawful_a and_o needful_a mean_n to_o procure_v the_o prince_n to_o be_v reform_v 520_o 521._o bishop_n bedel_n a_o reverend_n worthy_a divine_a in_o his_o answer_n to_o mr._n wad●sworth_n to_o satisfy_v he_o quo_fw-la jure_fw-la the_o protestant_a war_n in_o france_n and_o holland_n be_v justify_v say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n do_v not_o only_o allow_v but_o enforce_v every_o live_a thing_n to_o defend_v itself_o from_o violence_n then_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n permit_v those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o protection_n of_o other_o to_o who_o they_o owe_v no_o more_o than_o a_o honourable_a acknowledgement_n in_o case_n they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v themselves_o absolute_a sovereign_n and_o usurp_v their_o liberty_n to_o stand_v for_o the_o same_o and_o if_o a_o lawful_a prince_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o lord_n of_o his_o subject_n life_n and_o good_n shall_v attempt_v to_o despoil_v they_o of_o the_o same_o under_o colour_n of_o reduce_v they_o to_o his_o own_o religion_n after_o all_o humble_a remonstrance_n they_o may_v stand_v upon_o their_o own_o guard_n and_o be_v assail_v may_v repel_v force_n with_o force_n as_o do_v the_o maccabee_n under_o antiochus_n in_o which_o case_n notwithstanding_o the_o person_n of_o the_o prince_n himself_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v sacred_a and_o inviolable_a as_o be_v saul_n to_o david_n and_o last_o if_o the_o enrage_a minister_n of_o a_o lawful_a prince_n will_v abuse_v his_o authority_n against_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o country_n it_o be_v no_o rebellion_n to_o defend_v themselves_o reserve_v still_o their_o obedience_n to_o their_o sovereign_a inviolate_a i_o mention_v these_o two_o bishop_n only_o as_o be_v above_o all_o exception_n against_o who_o no_o just_a objection_n can_v be_v make_v either_o for_o learning_n piety_n loyalty_n or_o right_a church_n of_o england_n men._n which_o consideration_n i_o presume_v keep_v they_o from_o be_v burn_v in_o july_n 1683._o which_o act_n surprise_v not_o a_o few_o sober_a loyal_a man_n because_o if_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o all_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o europe_n be_v consult_v they_o will_v be_v find_v asserter_n of_o the_o like_a principle_n alas_o to_o sacrifice_v so_o many_o worthy_a learned_a pious_a man_n judgement_n to_o fire_n and_o faggot_n unheard_a unrefute_v as_o it_o be_v not_o for_o their_o honour_n so_o it_o be_v no_o more_o convince_a nor_o confute_v than_o that_o doctor_n argument_n who_o will_v confute_v bellarmine_n in_o
a_o wonderful_a deliverance_n of_o israel_n and_o venture_v his_o own_o and_o his_o people_n life_n and_o for_o what_o for_o but_o the_o bondage_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o lust_n and_o if_o herod_n son_n stand_v in_o the_o way_n of_o his_o ambitious_a security_n it_o be_v better_o be_v his_o hog_n than_o his_o child_n melius_fw-la herodis_fw-la porcum_fw-la esse_fw-la quam_fw-la filium_fw-la macr._n satur._n 72._o so_o that_o the_o advocate_n of_o arbitrary_a power_n must_v justify_v pharaoh_n in_o all_o his_o opposition_n against_o god_n and_o oppression_n of_o israel_n moreover_o pharaoh_n have_v more_o to_o say_v for_o the_o justification_n of_o his_o tyranny_n than_o some_o other_o zamzummims_n can_v pretend_v to_o viz._n that_o he_o be_v under_o no_o tie_n of_o civil_a or_o religious_a engagement_n no_o reciprocal_a oath_n between_o he_o and_o israel_n but_o have_v they_o in_o bondage_n he_o seem_v to_o have_v something_o like_o a_o right_n of_o impose_v his_o will_n for_o law_n upon_o israel_n yet_o account_v this_o tyranny_n and_o wickedness_n in_o pharaoh_n exod._n 3._o 7_o 8._o so_o caitiff_a and_o prevalent_a a_o sin_n be_v the_o impetuous_a desire_n of_o empery_n and_o revenge_n though_o to_o our_o utter_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n we_o all_o natural_o love_n domination_n and_o our_o lust_n better_a than_o our_o land_n we_o have_v rather_o part_v with_o thousand_o of_o ram_n and_o ten_o thousand_o river_n of_o oil_n with_o the_o fruit_n of_o our_o body_n than_o with_o the_o sin_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o be_v the_o leaven_n which_o ferment_v and_o boil_a in_o the_o breast_n of_o these_o lawless_a hector_n and_o do_v not_o the_o same_o leaven_n of_o haughtiness_n of_o oppression_n and_o revenge_n ferment_n and_o boil_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o breast_n of_o those_o in_o our_o day_n who_o so_o rule_n and_o so_o reign_v and_o ravage_v over_o whole_a nation_n their_o subject_n be_v it_o probable_a that_o god_n who_o have_v see_v the_o affliction_n of_o his_o people_n and_o hear_v their_o groan_a and_o after_o he_o have_v show_v wonder_n and_o sign_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n and_o in_o the_o red-sea_n and_o in_o the_o wilderness_n forty_o year_n who_o for_o their_o sake_n smite_v great_a nation_n and_o slay_v mighty_a king_n sihon_n king_n of_o the_o amorites_n and_o og_n king_n of_o bashan_n and_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o canaan_n thirty_o one_o in_o number_n josh_n 12_o and_o give_v their_o land_n for_o a_o heritage_n unto_o israel_n his_o people_n psal_n 135._o 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o teach_v they_o statute_n and_o judgement_n to_o do_v and_o govern_v themselves_o by_o and_o in_o that_o good_a land_n which_o he_o have_v give_v they_o in_o possossion_n which_o be_v so_o righteous_a that_o no_o nation_n under_o heaven_n have_v the_o like_a and_o which_o all_o nation_n will_v confess_v that_o this_o great_a nation_n be_v a_o wise_a and_o understanding_n people_n who_o have_v god_n so_o nigh_o unto_o they_o be_v it_o probable_a i_o say_v that_o god_n after_o he_o have_v deliver_v they_o so_o miraculous_o from_o so_o great_a thraldom_n of_o quod_fw-la libet_fw-la licet_fw-la shall_v yet_o subject_v they_o to_o the_o like_a lawless_a person_n or_o government_n in_o the_o world_n examine_v all_o his_o law_n observe_v all_o his_o statute_n search_v all_o his_o judgement_n and_o you_o will_v not_o find_v any_o the_o least_o footstep_n that_o way_n tend_v only_o he_o foretell_v they_o what_o their_o king_n will_v do_v therefore_o they_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v their_o just_a right_n so_o to_o do_v and_o because_o he_o say_v they_o shall_v be_v his_o servant_n 1_o sam._n 8._o 17._o therefore_o he_o have_v right_o to_o make_v they_o his_o slave_n and_o use_v they_o like_o bruit_n whereas_o nothing_o probable_o be_v thereby_o mean_v more_o than_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o servant_n to_o pay_v tribute_n gen._n 49._o 15._o and_o to_o serve_v in_o his_o army_n when_o he_o go_v out_o to_o sight_n their_o own_o battle_n gen._n 49._o 15._o but_o if_o slave_n be_v mean_v thereby_o yet_o it_o be_v violent_a and_o tyrannous_a because_o they_o have_v no_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n to_o entitle_v they_o just_o so_o to_o rule_v over_o they_o so_o that_o the_o prophet_n do_v only_o declare_v what_o they_o will_v do_v not_o what_o be_v their_o right_n to_o do_v now_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o cry_v unto_o god_n for_o deliverance_n it_o be_v lawful_a also_o to_o use_v any_o rational_a lawful_a mean_n and_o endeavour_n to_o extricate_v and_o relieve_v themselves_o they_o that_o will_v choose_v a_o king_n to_o the_o displeasure_n of_o god_n almighty_n it_o be_v but_o just_a they_o shall_v endure_v the_o iron_n furnace_n without_o his_o relief_n can_v any_o man_n not_o brutish_o preposs_v believe_v that_o god_n who_o never_o break_v his_o covenant_n but_o keep_v they_o even_o with_o his_o great_a enemy_n and_o rebel_n even_o with_o the_o most_o ungrateful_a and_o stiff-necked_a jew_n and_o yet_o shall_v establish_v a_o right_n in_o king_n and_o prince_n not_o only_o to_o break_v they_o but_o to_o leave_v the_o people_n without_o a_o remedy_n till_o doomsday_n in_o the_o afternoon_n till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n then_o but_o that_o they_o will_v be_v all_o of_o the_o welshmans_n mind_n and_o cry_v let_v she_o alone_o till_o then_o and_o drive_v on_o still_o when_o samuel_n tell_v the_o israelite_n the_o manner_n of_o the_o king_n that_o be_v to_o reign_v over_o they_o be_v it_o any_o more_o or_o other_o than_o what_o elisha_n tell_v hazael_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v king_n what_o he_o will_v do_v unto_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n viz._n their_o strong_a hold_n will_v thou_o set_v on_o fire_n and_o their_o young_a man_n will_v thou_o slay_v with_o the_o sword_n and_o will_v dash_v their_o child_n and_o rip_v up_o their_o woman_n with_o child_n do_v elisha_n by_o this_o his_o prophecy_n declare_v that_o hazael_n when_o a_o king_n have_v just_o right_o so_o to_o do_v sure_o no_o for_o hazael_n be_v convince_v of_o the_o contrary_a with_o great_a indignation_n answer_v what_o be_v thy_o servant_n a_o dog_n that_o he_o shall_v do_v this_o great_a thing_n 2_o king_n 8._o 12._o 13._o and_o yet_o to_o urge_v samuel_n for_o prove_v a_o unlimit_v power_n to_o be_v of_o right_n in_o king_n to_o do_v what_o they_o list_v uncontrolable_o what_o be_v it_o less_o than_o matchless_a impudence_n and_o horrible_a impiety_n when_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n tell_v coniah_n this_o have_v be_v thy_o manner_n from_o thy_o youth_n that_o thou_o obeye_v not_o my_o voice_n jer._n 22._o 21._o do_v he_o by_o tell_v he_o of_o that_o wicked_a manner_n and_o custom_n of_o he_o in_o not_o obey_v his_o voice_n reproach_n he_o or_o declare_v a_o right_n that_o he_o have_v to_o do_v so_o no_o more_o do_v samuel_n by_o tell_v the_o jew_n the_o manner_n of_o the_o heathen_a king_n derive_v a_o right_n to_o the_o jewish_a king_n so_o to_o do_v but_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n what_o it_o will_v what_o do_v it_o concern_v christian_n who_o choose_v king_n prince_n duke_n emperor_n and_o captain_n general_a from_o among_o themselves_o grant_v they_o commission_n give_v they_o tribute_n grant_v they_o power_n oblige_v they_o by_o solemn_a oath_n to_o govern_v its_o true_a in_o their_o own_o name_n but_o by_o their_o power_n confer_v on_o they_o and_o for_o their_o good_n which_o if_o they_o abuse_v it_o devolve_v and_o return_v back_o to_o they_o who_o give_v it_o and_o they_o can_v divest_v themselves_o of_o it_o in_o which_o god_n concern_v not_o himself_o immediate_o with_o it_o either_o by_o dream_n or_o vision_n or_o by_o urim_n or_o by_o prophet_n but_o have_v 1_o sam._n 26._o 6._o give_v they_o general_a precept_n in_o holy_a writ_n to_o govern_v themselves_o by_o to_o choose_v able_a man_n such_o as_o fear_v god_n man_n of_o truth_n hate_v covetousness_n and_o place_v such_o over_o themselves_o etc._n etc._n exod._n 18._o 21._o and_o have_v give_v law_n and_o bound_n to_o king_n etc._n etc._n deut._n 17._o 17_o 18_o 19_o which_o law_n though_o they_o most_o particular_o concern_v king_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o thereby_o disoblige_v from_o the_o observation_n from_o all_o the_o other_o law_n of_o god_n to_o which_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n without_o respect_n of_o person_n be_v bind_v to_o observe_v and_o keep_v so_o that_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o christian_n neither_o ask_v a_o king_n by_o they_o neither_o do_v receive_v any_o one_o by_o his_o immediate_a appointment_n but_o make_v king_n of_o one_o from_o among_o themselves_o according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o nation_n observe_v god_n holy_a law_n and_o precept_n when_o samuel_n 1._o 10._o 25._o tell_v the_o people_n
equal_a and_o he_o try_v the_o heart_n verse_n 2_o 3._o but_o what_o signify_v this_o to_o prove_v that_o king_n be_v accountable_a to_o none_o but_o god_n for_o male_a government_n another_o abuse_a place_n of_o scripture_n be_v psalm_n 51._o 4._o against_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v and_o do_v this_o evil_n in_o thy_o sight_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v when_o thou_o speak_v and_o be_v clear_a when_o thou_o judge_v that_o man_n of_o the_o same_o temper_n and_o complexion_n with_o leviathan_n shall_v urge_v place_n of_o scripture_n and_o make_v false_a gloss_n upon_o they_o i_o wonder_v not_o at_o all_o but_o that_o the_o pulpit_n shall_v chime_n and_o ring_n to_o the_o same_o tune_n i_o be_o in_o a_o amaze_n do_v they_o believe_v themselves_o or_o have_v they_o forget_v their_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o we_o forgive_v they_o that_o trespass_n against_o we_o if_o one_o man_n sin_n against_o another_o the_o judge_n shall_v judge_v he_o but_o if_o they_o sin_n against_o the_o lord_n who_o shall_v entreat_v for_o he_o 1_o sam._n 2._o 25._o so_o 1_o cor._n 8._o 12._o when_o you_o sin_n against_o the_o brethren_n to_o commit_v murder_n adultery_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o sin_n against_o god_n only_o happy_o may_v be_v good_a doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o alcoran_n or_o ●●viathan_n but_o certain_o can_v have_v no_o place_n in_o scripture_n no_o not_o in_o this_o psalm_n which_o be_v a_o psalm_n of_o david_n deep_a repentance_n confess_v his_o sin_n to_o god_n and_o beg_v his_o pardon_n david_n heart_n have_v smite_v he_o for_o these_o his_o sin_n against_o god_n and_o uriah_n do_v in_o the_o bitterness_n and_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n prostrate_a make_v his_o court_n to_o god_n his_o judge_n and_o beseech_v he_o more_o especial_o who_o only_o try_v the_o heart_n and_o reins_o acknowledge_v his_o sin_n and_o beg_v his_o pardon_n who_o only_o have_v power_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o life_n and_o death_n eternal_a and_o so_o only_o can_v acquit_v or_o punish_v eternal_o and_o to_o create_v in_o he_o a_o new_a heart_n and_o to_o renew_v a_o right_a spirit_n within_o he_o which_o no_o mortal_a have_v the_o like_a and_o therefore_o by_o only_a in_o this_o place_n can_v be_v mean_v no_o other_o but_o thou_o chief_o thou_o especial_o according_a to_o matth._n 10._o &_o luke_n 12._o he_o do_v not_o fear_v they_o which_o have_v power_n to_o kill_v the_o body_n only_o but_o not_o able_a to_o kill_v the_o soul_n but_o do_v fear_v he_o which_o after_o he_o have_v kill_v the_o body_n have_v power_n to_o cast_v into_o hell_n for_o david_n have_v already_o condemn_v himself_o to_o death_n before_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o man_n mention_v in_o nathan_n parable_n 2_o sam._n 12._o 5._o and_o david_n anger_n be_v great_o kindle_v against_o the_o man_n and_o he_o say_v to_o nathan_n as_o the_o lord_n live_v the_o man_n that_o have_v do_v this_o thing_n shall_v sure_o die_v have_v they_o not_o read_v what_o jonathan_n say_v to_o saul_n let_v not_o the_o king_n sin_n against_o his_o servant_n against_o david_n because_o he_o have_v not_o sin_v against_o thou_o 1_o sam._n 19_o 4._o do_v saul_n a_o king_n sin_n against_o david_n a_o private_a person_n and_o his_o subject_n in_o seek_v his_o innocent_a blood_n and_o shall_v david_n when_o king_n covet_v his_o neighbour_n uriah_n be_v wife_n and_o seek_v the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o uriah_n himself_o and_o yet_o not_o sin_n against_o uriah_n quis_fw-la discrevit_fw-la who_o have_v make_v the_o difference_n who_o exempt_v he_o false_a teacher_n that_o will_v be_v esteem_v man_n of_o god_n priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o yet_o teach_v doctrine_n more_o become_a priest_n of_o baal_n man_n of_o belial_n do_v not_o david_n sin_n against_o the_o ten_o commandment_n and_o against_o his_o neighbour_n also_o when_o he_o covet_v his_o neighbour_n wife_n and_o purchase_v her_o adulterous_a embrace_n at_o the_o rate_n of_o innocent_a blood_n may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o plead_v the_o like_a plea_n and_o justify_v ahab_n sin_v against_o god_n only_o and_o not_o against_o naboth_n when_o he_o purchase_v his_o vineyard_n at_o the_o price_n of_o his_o innocent_a blood_n 1_o king._n 21._o 19_o 2_o king._n 9_o 33._o 36._o if_o david_n have_v power_n to_o shed_v the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o uriah_n and_o debauch_n bathsheba_n uncontrolable_o by_o man_n it_o be_v either_o from_o god_n or_o not_o from_o god_n if_o it_o be_v from_o god_n it_o must_v be_v a_o power_n against_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o commandment_n which_o god_n give_v to_o david_n and_o not_o to_o any_o subject_n and_o so_o david_n lie_v when_o he_o confess_v it_o a_o sin_n which_o be_v none_o and_o consequent_o need_v no_o pardon_n and_o so_o consequent_o king_n because_o king_n be_v under_o no_o obligation_n of_o duty_n of_o mercy_n truth_n justice_n etc._n etc._n to_o their_o subject_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o scripture_n deut._n 1._o 15_o 20._o &_o 2_o chron._n 19_o 6_o 7._o rom._n 13._o 3._o 4._o if_o this_o power_n be_v from_o god_n as_o it_o be_v unrestrainable_a and_o unquestionable_a by_o the_o subject_a it_o can_v be_v from_o god_n at_o all_o for_o god_n can_v give_v a_o power_n to_o do_v ill_a that_o be_v unpunishable_a by_o man_n and_o not_o give_v that_o power_n to_o do_v ill_a for_o in_o this_o very_a thing_n that_o god_n give_v to_o david_n a_o power_n to_o kill_v and_o commit_v adultery_n with_o this_o respect_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v punishable_a by_o god_n only_o and_o not_o by_o man_n god_n must_v give_v it_o as_o a_o sinful_a power_n to_o do_v ill_a i._n e._n a_o power_n of_o dispensation_n to_o sin_n and_o so_o not_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o either_o god_n or_o man_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a design_n and_o purport_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o such_o a_o power_n as_o be_v not_o restrainable_a by_o man_n be_v from_o god_n permissiuè_fw-la as_o in_o devil_n and_o man_n than_o it_o be_v no_o regal_a power_n nor_o any_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o then_o to_o resist_v such_o power_n be_v not_o to_o resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god._n for_o priest_n to_o preach_v king_n to_o be_v nursing-fathers_n of_o the_o people_n and_o to_o be_v custodes_fw-la utriusque_fw-la tabulae_fw-la as_o indeed_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o yet_o to_o preach_v that_o if_o king_n do_v break_v the_o commandment_n yet_o they_o sin_n against_o god_n only_o and_o be_v accountable_a to_o god_n only_o be_v divinity_n become_v only_a micha_n priest_n that_o for_o a_o little_a better_a reward_n and_o hope_n of_o preferment_n will_v with_o gladness_n of_o heart_n take_v ephod_n take_v teraphim_n take_v grave_v image_n preach_v any_o thing_n swallow_v down_o theft_n and_o idolatry_n together_o pervert_v any_o text_n though_o thereby_o whole_a nation_n be_v robe_v and_o despoil_v of_o their_o law_n liberty_n and_o religion_n false_a prophet_n that_o thus_o flatter_v profaneness_n betray_v god_n truth_n and_o smother_a and_o dissemble_v the_o strictness_n and_o purity_n of_o his_o way_n strike_v at_o sin_n with_o the_o scabboard_n and_o not_o with_o the_o sword_n extenuate_v evil_a palliate_a vice_n daub_v with_o untempered_a mortar_n and_o by_o divine_a lie_n to_o seduce_v king_n and_o prince_n if_o king_n can_v do_v no_o wrong_n to_o their_o people_n and_o be_v accountable_a to_o god_n only_o what_o make_v samuel_n to_o make_v public_a proclamation_n behold_v here_o i_o be_o witness_v against_o i_o before_o the_o lord_n and_o before_o his_o anointed_n who_o ox_n have_v i_o take_v or_o who_o ass_n have_v i_o take_v or_o who_o have_v i_o defraud_v who_o have_v i_o oppress_v or_o of_o who_o hand_n have_v i_o receive_v any_o bribe_n to_o blind_v my_o eye_n therewith_o and_o i_o will_v restore_v it_o to_o you_o 1_o sam._n 12._o 3._o so_o lewis_n ix_o for_o his_o great_a piety_n and_o devotion_n surname_v the_o saint_n the_o french_a king_n be_v full_o satisfy_v in_o his_o conscience_n that_o sovereign_n be_v responsible_a by_o law_n both_o divine_a and_o human_a for_o all_o the_o miscarriage_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o subordinate_a minister_n cause_v to_o be_v publish_v through_o all_o his_o kingdom_n that_o whoever_o have_v suffer_v any_o wrong_a or_o damage_n by_o he_o or_o by_o any_o belong_v to_o he_o shall_v make_v it_o know_v and_o he_o will_v give_v they_o satisfaction_n out_o of_o his_o own_o estate_n which_o be_v punctual_o perform_v according_o to_o i_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n and_o i_o be_o in_o a_o amaze_n how_o any_o man_n can_v be_v so_o bias_v or_o corrupt_v in_o judgement_n except_o possess_v with_o a_o evil_a spirit_n as_o to_o draw_v such_o conclusion_n from_o such_o premise_n can_v any_o thing_n be_v
more_o ridiculous_a in_o nature_n in_o reason_n in_o wisdom_n in_o understanding_n to_o give_v law_n to_o king_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o swear_v to_o keep_v they_o and_o yet_o to_o be_v understand_v at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o be_v lawless_a and_o not_o oblige_v to_o keep_v they_o according_a to_o some_o or_o at_o lest_o can_v be_v question_v if_o they_o break_v they_o according_a to_o other_o which_o be_v as_o caitiff_n a_o position_n as_o the_o other_o and_o differ_v nothing_o but_o in_o word_n only_o shall_v all_o other_o be_v punish_v for_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o same_o law_n and_o king_n only_o except_v who_o by_o solemn_a and_o sacred_a oath_n have_v bind_v themselves_o to_o performance_n and_o the_o law_n make_v no_o exception_n absit_fw-la do_v god_n make_v any_o exception_n do_v not_o god_n punish_v king_n as_o severe_o as_o he_o do_v other_o be_v not_o tophet_n ordain_v of_o old_a which_o be_v deep_a and_o large_a the_o pile_n whereof_o be_v fire_n and_o much_o wood_n and_o which_o be_v kindle_v by_o my_o breath_n as_o by_o a_o stream_n of_o brimstone_n yea_o for_o king_n it_o be_v prepare_v isaiah_n 30._o 33._o and_o shall_v we_o give_v such_o encouragement_n to_o break_v law_n and_o to_o work_v wickedness_n god_n forbid_v be_v not_o such_o doctrine_n encouragement_n to_o king_n to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n above_o their_o brethren_n against_o which_o god_n have_v forewarn_v and_o forbid_v they_o that_o they_o may_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v but_o men._n god_n make_v his_o own_o sabbath_n for_o man_n and_o not_o man_n for_o the_o sabbath_n and_o have_v he_o not_o make_v king_n so_o too_o moses_n be_v a_o king_n with_o supreme_a power_n well_o what_o then_o and_o so_o let_v all_o king_n have_v if_o they_o have_v the_o same_o warrant_n commission_n access_n and_o freedom_n with_o god_n almighty_a to_o have_v constant_a recourse_n unto_o he_o to_o carry_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o people_n unto_o he_o and_o receive_v his_o command_n and_o communicate_v they_o to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o prosecute_v they_o as_o punctual_o as_o he_o do_v and_o be_v as_o faithful_a in_o his_o house_n as_o he_o be_v but_o though_o moses_n have_v this_o great_a and_o mighty_a power_n be_v as_o it_o be_v god_n companion_n speak_v unto_o god_n and_o god_n answer_v he_o exod._n 19_o 19_o yet_o it_o no_o where_o appear_v that_o quod_fw-la libet_fw-la licet_fw-la that_o he_o can_v do_v what_o he_o list_v and_o be_v accountable_a to_o god_n only_o it_o be_v true_a the_o people_n come_v to_o he_o to_o ask_v counsel_n of_o god_n for_o they_o but_o not_o to_o do_v his_o own_o command_n without_o god_n command_n and_o advice_n first_o have_v and_o all_o this_o be_v but_o to_o teach_v they_o the_o ordinance_n and_o law_n and_o show_v they_o the_o way_n wherein_o they_o be_v to_o walk_v and_o the_o work_v they_o be_v to_o do_v exod._n 18._o 20._o not_o to_o oppress_v or_o injure_v they_o or_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o to_o give_v law_n not_o receive_v or_o be_v oblige_v by_o any_o themselves_o so_o that_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n god_n be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n moses_n only_o his_o interpreter_n and_o ambassador_n and_o if_o king_n will_v not_o be_v as_o faithful_a as_o moses_n be_v in_o judge_v and_o act_v according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n of_o their_o and_o our_o god_n there_o will_v then_o be_v no_o lead_n into_o captivity_n no_o complain_n in_o our_o street_n no_o break_n in_o nor_o go_v out_o but_o happy_a will_v be_v the_o people_n that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o case_n yea_o happy_a that_o people_n who_o god_n be_v the_o lord_n psal_n 144._o 14._o 15._o to_o make_v law_n to_o bind_v king_n and_o people_n and_o yet_o king_n to_o break_v they_o impune_fw-la when_o the_o very_a law_n themselves_o do_v not_o exempt_v they_o be_v very_o ill_o become_v reasonable_a man_n and_o that_o all_o but_o king_n shall_v be_v punish_v for_o the_o breach_n of_o they_o be_v wicked_a and_o unjust_a it_o may_v happen_v in_o all_o kingdom_n most_o probable_o in_o those_o that_o be_v haereditary_a that_o some_o king_n may_v be_v idiot_n or_o mad_a or_o follow_v mad_a council_n and_o advisor_n a_o crime_n of_o the_o same_o leaven_n as_o do_v rehoboam_n and_o must_v whole_a kingdom_n then_o also_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o tyranny_n to_o be_v chastise_v not_o with_o whip_n but_o with_o scorpion_n without_o make_v use_n of_o their_o power_n to_o extricate_v themselves_o out_o of_o their_o hardship_n and_o misery_n be_v it_o not_o then_o natural_a to_o cry_v what_o portion_n have_v we_o in_o david_n we_o have_v no_o inheritance_n in_o the_o son_n of_o jesse_n every_o man_n to_o your_o tent_n withdraw_v your_o service_n withhold_v your_o tribute_n fight_v not_o against_o the_o interest_n of_o your_o nation_n and_o now_o david_n see_v to_o thy_o own_o house_n 2_o chron._n 10._o 16._o though_o king_n have_v the_o great_a title_n yet_o the_o law_n be_v to_o govern_v both_o they_o and_o their_o subject_n and_o though_o all_o law_n run_v in_o their_o name_n yet_o they_o can_v do_v what_o they_o list_v but_o as_o he_o be_v to_o command_v according_a to_o law_n so_o his_o subject_n be_v to_o obey_v he_o according_a to_o law_n not_o against_o law._n do_v god_n himself_o keep_v covenant_n for_o ever_o and_o never_o break_v any_o and_o shall_v king_n who_o claim_v their_o title_n and_o power_n from_o he_o take_v great_a liberty_n and_o freedom_n to_o break_v the_o covenant_n and_o agreement_n with_o their_o subject_n than_o god_n himself_o or_o pretend_v to_o be_v unaccountable_a i_o doubt_v they_o themselves_o will_v not_o accept_v such_o a_o plea_n from_o their_o own_o ambassador_n or_o minister_n transgress_v their_o commission_n have_v the_o israelite_n power_n to_o cast_v off_o their_o corrupt_a judge_n a_o government_n well_o please_v to_o god_n himself_o and_o to_o choose_v they_o another_o form_n of_o government_n even_o kingly_a contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n even_o of_o god_n himself_o and_o do_v not_o god_n gratify_v they_o therein_o though_o they_o reject_v not_o samuel_n only_o but_o god_n himself_o thereby_o sam._n 8._o 7_o 8._o for_o he_o give_v they_o a_o king_n in_o his_o anger_n and_o take_v he_o away_o in_o his_o wrath_n hos_fw-la 13._o 11._o have_v they_o such_o power_n under_o the_o law_n and_o have_v not_o christian_n the_o same_o under_o the_o gospel_n if_o not_o show_v when_o where_o and_o by_o who_o it_o be_v take_v away_o certain_o whoever_o set_v up_o himself_o to_o be_v supreme_a and_o above_o all_o law_n or_o to_o be_v accountable_a to_o none_o but_o to_o god_n for_o breach_n of_o they_o do_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v make_v himself_o a_o idol_n or_o a_o strange_a god_n to_o be_v revere_v without_o contradiction_n if_o nabuchadnezzar_n erect_v his_o prodigious_a idol_n must_v all_o people_n nation_n and_o language_n fall_v down_o and_o worship_v it_o gideon_n who_o the_o man_n of_o israel_n commissioned_n say_v rule_v thou_o over_o we_o both_o thou_o and_o thy_o son_n and_o thy_o son_n son_n also_o but_o gideon_n answer_v i_o will_v not_o rule_v over_o you_o neither_o shall_v my_o son_n rule_v over_o you_o the_o lord_n shall_v rule_v over_o you_o judg._n 8._o 22_o 23._o by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o gideon_n by_o this_o commission_n be_v as_o supreme_a and_o have_v as_o large_a power_n as_o any_o king_n have_v or_o as_o the_o israelite_n can_v give_v he_o without_o formal_a covenant_n or_o law_n to_o tie_v he_o up_o and_o yet_o his_o answer_n be_v a_o document_n upon_o divine_a record_n for_o ever_o to_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o right_a of_o man_n to_o domineer_v over_o man_n but_o it_o belong_v and_o appertain_v to_o god_n only_o to_o rule_v without_o control_v and_o indeed_o it_o be_v both_o against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o precept_n divine_a for_o king_n so_o to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n above_o their_o brethren_n as_o to_o rule_v over_o they_o rigorous_o uncontrolable_o for_o god_n create_v they_o all_o equal_a and_o we_o shall_v all_o stand_v in_o a_o equal_a distance_n before_o god_n tribunal_n where_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n what_o difference_n and_o distance_n of_o station_n and_o of_o honour_n there_o be_v among_o we_o be_v from_o ourselves_o and_o of_o our_o own_o frame_n naked_a come_v we_o into_o the_o world_n and_o naked_a shall_v we_o return_v it_o be_v ill_a very_o ill_o offend_v little_a one_o who_o angel_n do_v always_o behold_v the_o face_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n mat._n 18._o 10._o by_o all_o which_o it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o the_o mosaic_a king_n and_o judge_n be_v equal_o oblige_v to_o keep_v the_o law_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o
and_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o faithful_a as_o be_v moses_n in_o not_o deviate_a from_o god_n commandment_n christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o against_o superiority_n kingship_n government_n or_o governor_n but_o against_o the_o haughty_a and_o insolent_a deportment_n and_o tyrannical_a abuse_n of_o the_o power_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n as_o the_o heathen_a prince_n do_v which_o he_o rebuke_n here_o intimate_v that_o so_o to_o govern_v be_v to_o rule_v over_o other_o to_o their_o own_o hurt_n and_o that_o to_o such_o a_o woe_n be_v denounce_v woe_n to_o they_o that_o decree_v unrighteous_a decree_n and_o that_o write_v grievousness_n which_o they_o have_v prescribe_v to_o turn_v aside_o the_o needy_a from_o judgement_n and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o right_n from_o the_o poor_a that_o widow_n may_v be_v their_o prey_n and_o that_o they_o may_v rob_v the_o fatherless_a but_o be_v not_o you_o like_v unto_o the_o heathen_a who_o govern_v after_o such_o a_o rate_n but_o the_o great_a you_o be_v in_o honour_n and_o power_n be_v you_o more_o humble_a and_o as_o he_o that_o serve_v and_o be_v as_o god_n vicegerent_n in_o which_o appellation_n you_o all_o glory_n and_o boast_v be_v you_o all_o imitator_n of_o he_o and_o follow_v his_o example_n do_v good_a to_o all_o execute_v judgement_n and_o righteousness_n and_o deliver_v the_o spoil_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o oppressor_n and_o do_v no_o wrong_n no_o violence_n to_o the_o stranger_n the_o fatherless_a nor_o to_o the_o widow_n neither_o shed_v innocent_a blood_n lest_o his_o fury_n go_v out_o like_a fire_n and_o burn_v that_o none_o can_v quench_v it_o because_o of_o the_o evil_a of_o such_o do_n the_o great_a you_o be_v the_o more_o humble_a you_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o then_o you_o shall_v find_v favour_n with_o the_o lord_n in_o lowliness_n of_o mind_n let_v each_o esteem_v other_o better_a than_o themselves_o as_o be_v his_o precept_n so_o be_v his_o example_n who_o though_o he_o be_v chief_a priest_n king_n and_o lord_n yet_o be_v he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o disciple_n as_o he_o that_o serve_v it_o be_v not_o regality_n but_o piety_n that_o ennoble_v and_o make_v prince_n in_o good_a earnest_n god_n vicegerent_n carry_v they_o in_o thy_o bosom_n as_o a_o nurse_n father_n carry_v the_o suck_a child_n into_o the_o land_n which_o thou_o swear_v unto_o their_o father_n a_o prescription_n and_o document_n for_o all_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n so_o god_n to_o moses_n who_o he_o make_v prince_n and_o lawgiver_n over_o the_o jew_n his_o peculiar_a people_n i._n e._n love_o tender_o careful_o which_o show_v the_o great_a love_n mildness_n gentleness_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o governor_n so_o christ_n he_o shall_v feed_v his_o flock_n like_o a_o shepherd_n he_o shall_v gather_v his_o lamb_n in_o his_o arm_n and_o bear_v they_o in_o his_o bosom_n and_o he_o shall_v gentle_o lead_v those_o that_o be_v young_a isaiah_n 40._o 11._o so_o paul_n we_o be_v gentle_a among_o you_o even_o as_o a_o nurse_n cherish_v her_o child_n we_o exhort_v and_o comfort_v and_o charge_v every_o one_o of_o you_o as_o a_o father_n do_v his_o child_n 1_o thes_n 2._o 7._o 11._o according_o the_o hebrew_n have_v this_o rule_n for_o all_o governor_n it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o a_o man_n to_o govern_v with_o stateliness_n over_o the_o congregation_n and_o with_o haughtiness_n of_o spirit_n but_o with_o meekness_n and_o fear_v and_o every_o pastor_n that_o bring_v more_o terror_n upon_o the_o congregation_n than_o be_v for_o the_o name_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v be_v punish_v and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o to_o govern_v they_o with_o contemptuous_a carriage_n although_o they_o be_v the_o common_a people_n of_o the_o land_n neither_o may_v he_o tread_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o holy_a people_n although_o they_o be_v unlearned_a and_o base_a they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o must_v bear_v the_o toil_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o their_o burden_n as_o moses_n our_o master_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v as_o a_o nurse_n father_n bear_v his_o child_n etc._n etc._n maimon_n in_o misn_a tom_fw-mi 4._o in_o sanhedrim_n ch_n 25._o sect._n 1._o 2._o when_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o government_n grow_v too_o heavy_a for_o moses_n god_n command_v he_o say_v gather_v unto_o i_o seventy_o man_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n who_o thou_o know_v to_o be_v elder_n of_o the_o people_n and_o officer_n over_o they_o and_o bring_v they_o unto_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o congregation_n that_o they_o may_v stand_v there_o with_o thou_o and_o i_o will_v come_v down_o and_o talk_v with_o they_o and_o i_o will_v take_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v on_o thou_o and_o will_v put_v it_o upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v bear_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o people_n with_o thou_o that_o thou_o bear_v it_o not_o thyself_o alone_o num_fw-la 11._o 16_o 17._o by_o so_o do_v moses_n spirit_n be_v not_o at_o all_o diminish_v for_o as_o sol_fw-mi jarchi_n say_v moses_n in_o that_o hour_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o lamp_n that_o be_v leave_v burn_v in_o the_o candlestick_n in_o the_o sanctuary_n from_o which_o all_o the_o other_o lamp_n be_v light_v yet_o the_o light_n thereof_o be_v not_o lessen_v but_o god_n show_v hereby_o that_o none_o without_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n be_v fit_a for_o office_n and_o government_n so_o jethro_n to_o moses_n choose_v able_a man_n such_o as_o fear_v god_n man_n of_o truth_n hate_v covetousness_n and_o place_v such_o over_o they_o exod._n 18._o 21._o deut._n 1._o 13._o act_n 6._o 3._o the_o hebrew_n have_v this_o rule_n viz._n any_o synedrion_fw-mi king_n or_o governor_n that_o shall_v set_v up_o a_o judge_n for_o israel_n that_o be_v not_o fit_a and_o be_v not_o wise_a in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o law_n and_o meet_v to_o be_v a_o judge_n although_o he_o be_v whole_o amiable_a and_o have_v in_o he_o other_o good_a thing_n yet_o he_o that_o set_v he_o up_o transgress_v etc._n etc._n maim_v in_o sanhedrim_n chap._n 3._o sect._n 8._o to_o king_n and_o queen_n not_o govern_v as_o they_o ought_v jeremy_n be_v send_v chap._n 13._o 18._o say_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o to_o the_o queen_n humble_v yourselves_o sit_v down_o for_o your_o principality_n shall_v come_v down_o even_o the_o crown_n of_o your_o glory_n obj._n submit_v yourselves_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n whether_o it_o be_v to_o the_o king_n as_o a_o supreme_a or_o unto_o governor_n as_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v send_v by_o he_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o evil_a doer_n and_o for_o the_o praise_n of_o they_o that_o do_v well_o for_o so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n th●_n with_o well_o do_v you_o may_v put_v to_o silence_v the_o ignorance_n of_o foolish_a man_n peter_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o private_a person_n stranger_n scatter_v through_o pontus_n galatia_n gappad●●ia_n asia_n bythinia_n to_o a_o people_n scatter_v through_o the_o lesser_a asia_n be_v there_o as_o sojourner_n and_o consequent_o not_o under_o any_o set_a form_n of_o government_n by_o their_o own_o consent_n nor_o indeed_o capable_a of_o it_o but_o what_o do_v this_o concern_v whole_a kingdom_n of_o freeborn_a people_n who_o be_v govern_v by_o their_o own_o law_n of_o their_o own_o make_n to_o which_o their_o king_n be_v as_o subject_a as_o themselves_o and_o that_o by_o their_o own_o consent_n and_o solemn_a oath_n make_v you_o no_o difference_n between_o a_o few_o disperse_a people_n and_o kingdom_n of_o noble_n senators_z diet_n parliament_n peer_n of_o king_n that_o have_v a_o coordinate_a power_n in_o the_o legislative_a authority_n and_o without_o which_o king_n can_v be_v for_o its_o the_o govern_v that_o make_v king_n not_o king_n the_o govern_v a_o king_n and_o no_o king._n but_o be_v it_o that_o it_o be_v write_v to_o a_o senate_n what_o be_v you_o the_o better_a when_o no_o precept_n to_o which_o reason_n be_v adjoin_v do_v bind_v beyond_o or_o beside_o that_o reason_n lex_fw-la est_fw-la ordo_fw-la be_v subject_n therefore_o for_o the_o lord_n sake_n what_o be_v that_o because_o kingly_a government_n have_v a_o divine_a stamp_n what_o to_o do_v to_o punish_v evil_a doer_n and_o to_o praise_v and_o reward_v they_o that_o do_v well_o for_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god._n when_o king_n so_o govern_v there_o will_v be_v no_o complain_v in_o our_o street_n no_o calling_n coram_fw-la nobis_fw-la of_o our_o obligation_n to_o obey_v such_o king_n as_o be_v here_o describe_v there_o be_v no_o question_n so_o to_o obey_v other_o who_o govern_v contrary_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n no_o obligation_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o precept_n appear_v ver._n 16._o as_o free_v therefore_o not_o as_o slave_n turn_v the_o table_n what_o
subtract_v from_o their_o prince_n what_o they_o please_v nostrum_fw-la est_fw-la far_o modice_fw-la populi_n voluntates_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v our_o duty_n modest_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o people_n so_o tertullian_n in_o his_o apolegetico_n to_o a_o ethnic_a emperor_n bokl_o tell_v he_o that_o a_o emperor_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v call_v lord_n augustus_n say_v he_o imperii_fw-la formator_fw-la ne_fw-la dominum_fw-la quidem_fw-la dici_fw-la se_fw-la volebat_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la cognomen_fw-la etc._n etc._n augustus_n be_v the_o founder_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o be_v call_v lord_n because_o it_o be_v the_o sir_n name_n of_o god_n almighty_n and_o if_o he_o be_v father_n of_o his_o country_n how_o can_v he_o be_v lord_n thereof_o o_o but_o athanasius_n the_o egyptian_a bishop_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o wicked_a nefarious_a thing_n to_o call_v king_n of_o the_o earth_n before_o tribunal_n what_o then_o when_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n though_o have_v in_o great_a veneration_n be_v trumpt_v up_o to_o justify_v any_o opinion_n without_o produce_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o such_o their_o opinion_n it_o be_v but_o magnificum_fw-la nihil_fw-la make_v a_o noise_n and_o a_o pother_n but_o neither_o prove_v nor_o convince_v here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n out_o of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v it_o and_o in_o this_o there_o be_v as_o little_a credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o athanasius_n as_o when_o at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o creed_n he_o bold_o affirm_v that_o that_o creed_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o except_o a_o man_n believe_v faithful_o he_o can_v be_v save_v a_o creed_n which_o many_o doubt_n whether_o he_o understand_v it_o himself_o or_o be_v yet_o intelligible_a to_o any_o other_o however_o to_o place_v the_o certainty_n of_o salvation_n upon_o such_o mysterious_a expression_n believe_v it_o quicunque_fw-la vult_fw-la i_o be_o sure_a vulgar_a capacity_n can_v reach_v it_o and_o they_o be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n so_o st._n ambrose_n of_o a_o proconsul_n and_o catechumen_n call_v to_o be_v bishop_n of_o milan_n be_v bring_v upon_o the_o stage_n to_o serve_v the_o same_o turn_n either_o unskilful_o or_o flatter_o interpret_n against_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v psal_n 51._o 4._o who_o will_v have_v all_o people_n subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o yet_o the_o emperor_n be_v subject_a to_o he_o how_o do_v he_o treat_v theodosius_n the_o emperor_n forbid_v he_o to_o come_v into_o the_o church_n thereby_o demonstrate_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o novice_n i._n e._n new_o come_v to_o the_o faith_n from_o be_v a_o proconsul_n and_o a_o catechumen_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o lift_v up_o with_o pride_n who_o at_o last_o prostrate_v at_o the_o bishop_n foot_n have_v obtain_v his_o pardon_n and_o restore_v to_o the_o participation_n of_o holy_a duty_n and_o stand_v without_o the_o rail_n magisterial_o and_o saucy_o tell_v he_o o_o imperator_fw-la interiora_fw-la loca_fw-la tantum_fw-la sacerdotihus_n attributa_fw-la quae_fw-la caeteris_fw-la contingere_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la in_o this_o his_o demeanour_n he_o show_v himself_o rather_o a_o high_a priest_n of_o jewish_a rite_n and_o custom_n than_o a_o true_a bishop_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o ought_v to_o be_v blameless_a and_o not_o lift_v up_o with_o pride_n lest_o he_o fall_v into_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n i_o wonder_v in_o what_o gospel_n the_o bishop_n find_v such_o authority_n to_o be_v his_o right_n to_o treat_v emperor_n after_o such_o a_o rate_n this_o bishop_n attribute_v absolute_a dominion_n to_o the_o emperor_n over_o other_o but_o it_o seem_v reserve_v power_n over_o the_o emperor_n to_o his_o own_o tribe_n of_o prelate_n and_o therefore_o repulse_v theodosius_n as_o subject_v to_o he_o say_v coaequalium_fw-la hominum_fw-la es_fw-la imperator_fw-la &_o conservorum_fw-la unus_fw-la enim_fw-la omnium_fw-la dominus_fw-la rex_fw-la &_o creator_n very_o well_o the_o murder_n be_v now_o out_o that_o mystery_n which_o the_o subtlety_n and_o craft_n ecclesiastic_a have_v long_o keep_v in_o the_o dark_a the_o indiscreet_a to_o say_v no_o worse_o zeal_n of_o this_o otherwise_o pious_a learned_a bishop_n have_v bring_v to_o light_v and_o this_o very_a st._n ambrose_n be_v command_v by_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n to_o depart_v the_o city_n of_o milan_n refuse_v to_o obey_v and_o be_v compass_v with_o a_o company_n of_o arm_a people_n he_o defend_v himself_o and_o house_n against_o the_o emperor_n commander_n and_o so_o resist_v the_o supreme_a power_n against_o which_o he_o have_v teach_v as_o to_o that_o place_n of_o the_o psalmist_n psal_n 51._o 4._o against_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v whereof_o before_z certain_o every_o individual_a have_v the_o same_o right_n to_o the_o same_o plea_n and_o then_o i_o appeal_v unto_o and_o adjure_v all_o ecclesiastic_n plain_o to_o tell_v we_o if_o king_n shall_v treat_v their_o wife_n or_o daughter_n after_o the_o same_o rate_n whether_o they_o do_v real_o and_o true_o believe_v that_o king_n so_o treat_v they_o as_o david_n do_v vriah_n do_v sin_n only_o against_o god_n and_o not_o offend_v they_o also_o sure_o they_o dare_v not_o be_v so_o confident_a as_o to_o assert_v it_o no_o offence_n to_o they_o and_o yet_o such_o there_o be_v if_o this_o be_v currant_n doctrine_n in_o this_o particular_a it_o will_v as_o certain_o hold_v in_o all_o other_o sin_n such_o priest_n as_o preach_v such_o doctrine_n do_v manifest_v themselves_o to_o be_v priest_n of_o baal_n rather_o than_o priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god._n what_o mischief_n such_o preachment_n have_v do_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n let_v the_o world_n itself_o be_v judge_n look_v upon_o allthe_n court_n and_o life_n of_o all_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n christian_n and_o tell_v i_o if_o we_o may_v not_o very_o probable_o judge_v by_o their_o life_n and_o government_n that_o they_o think_v their_o authority_n a_o immunity_n from_o all_o obedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o no_o wonder_n when_o such_o parasite_n and_o sycophant_n preach_v and_o print_v such_o doctrine_n that_o evil_a king_n be_v constitute_v by_o god_n be_v it_o so_o and_o so_o be_v all_o other_o evil_n shall_v there_o be_v evil_a in_o the_o city_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o do_v it_o amos_n 6._o and_o yet_o the_o same_o prophet_n bid_v we_o hate_v the_o evil_a and_o love_v the_o good_a and_o therefore_o for_o that_o reason_n have_v they_o god_n only_o for_o their_o judge_n what_o above_o all_o law_n write_v and_o unwritten_a natural_a and_o divine_a and_o by_o no_o law_n to_o be_v call_v to_o account_n by_o their_o subject_n and_o be_v find_v guilty_a though_o so_o wherefore_o certain_o no_o law_n of_o god_n forbid_v it_o no_o law_n except_v or_o exempt_v they_o reason_n right_o justice_n religion_n true_a policy_n and_o government_n reprove_v all_o indifferent_o without_o distinction_n or_o respect_n of_o person_n i_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o read_v or_o know_v any_o law_n write_v or_o unwritten_a natural_a or_o divine_a bring_v to_o forbid_v the_o same_o and_o why_o shall_v not_o reproof_n and_o censure_n of_o sin_n and_o vice_n and_o wrong_n be_v execute_v against_o they_o because_o forsooth_o though_o wicked_a yet_o be_v constitute_v of_o god_n wretched_a perverse_a reason_n i_o have_v create_v the_o waster_n to_o destroy_v isaiah_n 54._o 16._o be_v destroyer_n therefore_o above_o all_o law_n consider_v well_o with_o yourselves_o if_o the_o reason_n and_o consequence_n be_v not_o the_o very_a same_o how_o many_o king_n in_o scripture_n constitute_v by_o god_n himself_o have_v we_o know_v punish_v and_o that_o by_o man_n be_v not_o pope_n tyrant_n in_o the_o church_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n constitue_v by_o god_n as_o prima_fw-la sedes_fw-la anemine_a judicabitur_fw-la 77_o and_o yet_o how_o powerful_o can_v the_o same_o man_n plead_v for_o dethrone_v they_o and_o yet_o plead_v impunity_n for_o king_n tyrant_n how_o ridiculous_a be_v it_o to_o plead_v thus_o against_o baal_n who_o province_n be_v conscience_n only_o to_o be_v remove_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o tyrant_n over_o our_o body_n life_n and_o fortune_n conscience_n and_o liberty_n must_v be_v continue_v without_o control_n if_o otherwise_o than_o kingdom_n and_o state_n will_v be_v turn_v topsy_n turuie_o be_v it_o so_o if_o for_o the_o better_a why_o not_o if_o tyranny_n and_o abuse_n of_o power_n must_v still_o continue_v settle_v on_o its_o dregs_o and_o lees_n then_o actum_fw-la est_fw-la at_fw-fr dieu_fw-fr to_o all_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o govern_v if_o thing_n once_o reduce_v quo_fw-la jure_fw-la quave_fw-la injuria_fw-la unto_o a_o ill_a habit_n or_o figure_n must_v they_o for_o ever_o so_o continue_v without_o contradiction_n god_n forbid_v it_o the_o same_o power_n be_v it_o in_o free_a state_n or_o
have_v the_o force_n of_o law_n for_o quintus_fw-la hortensius_n when_o the_o commons_o of_o rome_n have_v withdraw_v themselves_o into_o janiculum_n a_o town_n beyond_o tiber_n make_v a_o law_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o common_a people_n have_v command_v all_o the_o quirite_n the_o roman_a citizen_n shall_v be_v oblige_v by_o and_o observe_v which_o law_n l._n valerius_n and_o m._n horatius_n have_v grant_v centuriatis_fw-la comitiis_fw-la i._n e._n to_o the_o general_a assembly_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n assemble_v to_o treat_v of_o common_a affair_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o plebiscita_fw-la order_n make_v by_o the_o common_a people_n and_o the_o law_n for_o the_o plebiscita_fw-la the_o tribune_n demand_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o people_n but_o the_o law_n either_o consul_n or_o praetor_n or_o other_o magistrate_n advise_v rogabantur_fw-la be_v demand_v whether_o they_o shall_v be_v ratify_v or_o not_o they_o make_v also_o a_o difference_n between_o populus_fw-la the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n and_o plebs_fw-la the_o common_a rout_n for_o that_o among_o the_o people_n be_v patrician_n senators_z and_o the_o nobility_n but_o among_o the_o rout_n there_o be_v no_o patrician_n notwithstanding_o whatever_o the_o people_n command_v be_v not_o always_o to_o be_v ratify_v because_o whatever_o be_v not_o just_a the_o people_n may_v not_o command_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o senate_n though_o they_o be_v not_o bring_v yet_o if_o the_o tribune_n approve_v thereof_o and_o will_v have_v they_o ratify_v they_o obtain_v the_o force_n of_o law_n the_o edict_n and_o interdict_v of_o praetor_n also_o sometime_o and_o under_o some_o qualification_n have_v the_o force_n of_o law_n which_o be_v entitle_v jus_fw-la honorarium_fw-la which_o be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o lex_fw-la cornelia_n also_o the_o response_n of_o wiseman_n go_v sometime_o for_o currant_n likewise_o the_o able_a and_o wise_a lawyer_n be_v esteem_v and_o use_v as_o the_o best_a interpreter_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o law_n which_o some_o say_v be_v grant_v to_o they_o by_o augustus_n other_o as_o confident_o affirm_v they_o have_v it_o not_o from_o augustus_n and_o other_o prince_n but_o of_o ancient_a custom_n and_o right_n long_o before_o but_o caligula_n that_o monster_n and_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n cause_v all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o lawyer_n to_o be_v forbid_v and_o no_o body_n but_o himself_o to_o be_v the_o interpreter_n and_o judge_n of_o they_o at_o least_o the_o decree_n and_o constitution_n of_o prince_n go_v for_o currant_n law_n for_o when_o caesar_n and_o the_o follow_a emperor_n have_v obtain_v the_o chief_a empire_n and_o they_o only_o give_v law_n and_o all_o the_o right_n and_o power_n of_o legislation_n be_v rend_v from_o the_o people_n lege_fw-la hortensia_n and_o be_v give_v to_o the_o caesar_n so_o that_o their_o will_n and_o their_o decree_n without_o the_o counsel_n or_o consent_v of_o the_o people_n as_o former_o have_v the_o force_n of_o law_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n nature_n and_o reason_n caracalla_n be_v full_o possess_v of_o this_o exorbitant_a power_n use_v it_o according_o who_o first_o kill_v his_o own_o brother_n geta_n who_o have_v equal_a share_n with_o he_o in_o the_o government_n by_o the_o appointment_n of_o severus_n their_o father_n and_o then_o cause_v the_o great_a lawyer_n papinianus_n to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n because_o he_o will_v not_o defend_v that_o barbarous_a act_n of_o he_o before_o the_o senate_n allege_v for_o his_o justification_n that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o commit_v parricide_n than_o defend_v it_o but_o afterward_o this_o caracalla_n be_v content_v more_o majorum_fw-la to_o have_v he_o canonize_v divus_o modo_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la vivus_fw-la to_o deify_v he_o be_v dead_a in_o another_o world_n rather_o than_o to_o have_v he_o a_o live_a copartner_n with_o he_o in_o the_o empire_n on_o the_o contrary_a trajan_n that_o most_o excellent_a emperor_n be_v possess_v of_o the_o same_o power_n and_o have_v publish_v some_o private_a and_o special_a law_n or_o indult_n for_o great_a merit_n and_o understand_v that_o some_o rely_v thereon_o make_v ill_o use_v thereof_o by_o draw_v they_o into_o example_n and_o fear_v lest_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_n they_o shall_v be_v draw_v by_o application_n unto_o wrong_a cause_n and_o be_v bring_v into_o judgement_n and_o court_n of_o justice_n or_o plead_n as_o precedent_n they_o shall_v pass_v for_o law_n he_o refuse_v afterward_o to_o answer_v plaintiff_n or_o defendant_n by_o any_o writing_n or_o libel_n of_o record_n lest_o thereby_o pernicious_a example_n and_o as_o it_o be_v seminary_n of_o ill_n may_v spring_v from_o thence_o antiochus_n have_v so_o great_a veneration_n for_o the_o law_n that_o by_o his_o public_a edict_n he_o do_v declare_v that_o if_o he_o have_v at_o any_o time_n decree_v contrary_a to_o law_n and_o right_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v obey_v but_o shall_v be_v free_o oppose_v by_o who_o example_n agesilaus_n will_v be_v oblige_v by_o no_o promise_n that_o he_o shall_v make_v but_o on_o condition_n that_o they_o be_v just_a at_o what_o time_n the_o common_a people_n do_v choose_v their_o magistrate_n who_o they_o always_o account_v as_o sacred_a in_o the_o sacred_a mount_n it_o be_v provide_v by_o a_o law_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o patrician_n to_o apprehend_v or_o disturb_v any_o of_o they_o and_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o when_o against_o the_o power_n and_o insolence_n of_o the_o patrician_n the_o common_a people_n do_v assemble_v to_o choose_v tribune_n as_o champion_n and_o defender_n of_o their_o law_n and_o liberty_n to_o hear_v complaint_n against_o the_o patrician_n it_o will_v be_v very_o unjust_a that_o in_o that_o in_o which_o the_o people_n do_v choose_v their_o defender_n to_o the_o height_n and_o pitch_n of_o honour_n they_o shall_v admit_v those_o who_o be_v most_o adverse_a and_o chagrin_a to_o their_o liberty_n and_o franchise_n they_o esteem_v their_o tribune_n as_o the_o ephori_fw-la among_o the_o lacedaemonian_n advance_v and_o delegated_a to_o that_o office_n to_o curb_v the_o insolence_n of_o the_o spartan_a king_n lest_o they_o shall_v abuse_v their_o power_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o people_n theopompus_n a_o spartan_a king_n instate_v five_o of_o his_o friend_n to_o be_v ephori_fw-la as_o his_o auxiliary_a minister_n in_o his_o government_n at_o home_n when_o he_o go_v abroad_o in_o person_n with_o his_o army_n though_o it_o be_v provide_v by_o the_o law_n of_o sparta_n that_o their_o king_n shall_v not_o go_v out_o in_o person_n with_o their_o army_n which_o ephori_fw-la in_o process_n of_o time_n come_v to_o have_v so_o great_a a_o power_n over_o their_o king_n that_o they_o direct_v they_o what_o they_o be_v to_o do_v and_o also_o be_v censor_n of_o all_o they_o do_v insomuch_o that_o they_o call_v archidamus_n to_o account_v imprison_v he_o lay_v a_o great_a mulct_n upon_o he_o and_o at_o last_o take_v his_o life_n away_o the_o like_a they_o do_v to_o pausanias_n and_o agis_n lacedaemonian_a king_n and_o be_v so_o terrible_a that_o they_o erect_v timoris_fw-la sacellum_fw-la a_o chapel_n of_o terror_n which_o ephori_fw-la together_o with_o their_o king_n do_v take_v oath_n every_o month_n that_o they_o will_v observe_v the_o law_n of_o lycurgus_n and_o preserve_v the_o kingdom_n in_o peace_n in_o tract_n of_o time_n they_o grow_v so_o insolent_a that_o cleomenes_n break_v their_o empire_n and_o restore_v the_o kingly_a power_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o patrician_n to_o accept_v of_o be_v a_o plebeian_n magistrate_n and_o volero_n tribune_n of_o the_o people_n ordain_v by_o a_o law_n proclaim_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o plebeian_n that_o the_o plebeian_n magistrate_n shall_v be_v make_v without_o the_o patrician_n and_o only_o the_o plebeian_n admit_v to_o the_o tribunitian_a council_n and_o though_o former_o to_o be_v dictator_n consul_n praetor_n or_o censor_n none_o but_o patrician_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v yet_o afterward_o the_o patrician_n magistrate_n be_v to_o share_v and_o communicate_v with_o the_o plebeian_n so_o sextius_n primus_fw-la of_o a_o plebeian_n be_v make_v a_o consul_n which_o then_o be_v ratify_v lege_fw-la licinia_n which_o c._n licinius_n and_o l._n sextius_n tribune_n of_o the_o people_n proclaim_v that_o the_o consulship_n shall_v be_v common_a with_o the_o plebeian_n q._n also_o p._n philo_n and_o cl._n licinius_n stolo_n plebeian_n the_o one_o do_v bear_v the_o office_n of_o praetorship_n the_o other_o the_o master_n of_o the_o horse_n with_o the_o patrician_n moreover_o the_o dictatorship_n in_o which_o be_v place_v the_o great_a glory_n and_o censorship_n we_o find_v to_o be_v in_o common_a with_o the_o plebeian_n for_o both_o m._n rutilius_n the_o first_o dictator_n and_o censor_n then_o q._n pompeius_n and_o q._n metellus_n
power_n itself_o still_o virtual_o remain_v in_o themselves_o of_o which_o they_o can_v so_o total_o divest_v themselves_o but_o the_o spring_n and_o fountain_n thereof_o will_v still_o remain_v in_o they_o which_o be_v demonstrable_a for_o that_o in_o make_v law_n their_o consent_n be_v still_o require_v as_o absolute_o necessary_a the_o near_a we_o approach_v and_o imitate_v nature_n law_n the_o more_o demonstrable_a be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o people_n above_o the_o power_n of_o king_n their_o power_n be_v only_o derive_v from_o the_o same_o people_n as_o a_o stream_n from_o the_o fountain_n it_o be_v as_o evident_a that_o the_o people_n if_o free_a do_v not_o simple_o but_o hypothetical_o transfer_v their_o power_n unto_o king_n neither_o undeed_o can_v they_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o only_o conditional_o and_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o order_n of_o common_a justice_n peace_n and_o liberty_n from_o which_o if_o king_n do_v deviate_v it_o be_v always_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o people_n have_v transfer_v no_o such_o power_n and_o indeed_o transfer_v nothing_o because_o they_o transfer_v it_o only_o for_o certain_a good_a end_n and_o purpose_n nature_n so_o guide_v which_o end_v if_o frustrate_v or_o pervert_v the_o very_a pact_n and_o delegation_n themselves_o be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la voidable_a nay_o void_a at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o senate_n or_o people_n and_o therefore_o the_o people_n must_v consequent_o be_v superior_a to_o king_n who_o tho_o singulis_fw-la majores_fw-la yet_o in_o true_a construction_n of_o law_n and_o equity_n be_v universis_fw-la minores_fw-la in_o a_o popular_a state_n it_o be_v general_o acknowledge_v that_o magistrate_n place_v by_o the_o people_n may_v be_v censure_v by_o the_o people_n and_o in_o a_o aristocracy_n by_o the_o optimacy_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v hold_v monstrous_a that_o king_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o account_v in_o some_o country_n which_o if_o true_a conclude_v thus_o much_o certain_o true_a that_o they_o be_v more_o than_o brutish_o foolish_a ever_o to_o admit_v of_o any_o such_o government_n which_o most_o certain_o render_v they_o slave_n at_o the_o will_n of_o king_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o king_n only_o of_o all_o other_o governor_n must_v reign_v unquestionable_a uncensured_a uncontrollable_a do_v man_n bear_v under_o such_o a_o regiment_n natural_o become_v so_o desperate_o sottish_a and_o brutish_a as_o to_o love_v slavery_n better_o than_o freedom_n why_o do_v they_o then_o prescribe_v they_o law_n and_o condition_n of_o govern_v and_o oath_n for_o the_o more_o certain_a performance_n of_o they_o at_o their_o first_o admittance_n that_o they_o may_v with_o the_o better_a grace_n jeer_v and_o scorn_v and_o enslave_v they_o or_o that_o they_o only_o of_o all_o the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o man_n may_v have_v liberty_n to_o break_v law_n and_o perjure_v themselves_o impuné_fw-fr or_o be_v leave_v only_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n where_o be_v the_o great_a difference_n and_o distance_n between_o king_n and_o popular_a magistrate_n title_n only_o except_v which_o title_n the_o very_a people_n give_v they_o for_o the_o better_a grace_n adornment_n and_o majesty_n of_o their_o own_o government_n the_o same_o power_n and_o authority_n be_v transfer_v unto_o king_n and_o unto_o popular_a magistrate_n by_o the_o people_n both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o swear_v alike_o to_o observance_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o oblige_v to_o obey_v not_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o any_o long_a than_o quamdiu_fw-la id_fw-la bene_fw-la gesserit_fw-la who_o make_v the_o difference_n if_o any_o god_n have_v already_o decide_v it_o on_o behalf_n of_o the_o popular_a magistracy_n by_o his_o own_o example_n who_o of_o his_o own_o infinite_a wisdom_n authority_n and_o goodness_n towards_o mankind_n institute_v judge_n as_o the_o best_a form_n of_o government_n but_o appoint_v king_n in_o wrath_n and_o anger_n and_o indignation_n and_o at_o the_o foolish_a instance_n of_o a_o froward_a and_o rebellious_a people_n and_o as_o a_o punishment_n on_o they_o who_o have_v reject_v he_o and_o his_o government_n and_o rebel_v against_o he_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o kingship_n be_v first_o ordain_v as_o a_o punishment_n not_o as_o the_o best_a government_n to_o assert_v absolute_a dominion_n to_o be_v in_o king_n from_o the_o example_n of_o father_n and_o of_o master_n of_o family_n have_v no_o ground_n in_o nature_n scripture_n reason_n aristotle_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o politic_n condemn_v that_o opinion_n of_o there_o be_v but_o little_a difference_n in_o the_o similitude_n between_o a_o kingdom_n and_o a_o family_n regnum_fw-la à_fw-la familia_fw-la non_fw-la numero_fw-la solum_fw-la sed_fw-la specie_fw-la differt_fw-la for_o father_n beget_v their_o child_n and_o the_o people_n beget_v or_o create_v their_o king_n and_o not_o king_n the_o people_n and_o father_n provide_v for_o their_o child_n but_o the_o people_n provide_v for_o king_n not_o only_o for_o their_o necessary_n but_o for_o superfluity_n for_o their_o magnificence_n and_o for_o their_o grandeur_n and_o according_a to_o diodorus_n 11_o o._n kingdom_n of_o old_a be_v wont_a to_o be_v give_v not_o necessary_o to_o the_o son_n of_o king_n but_o to_o they_o in_o who_o do_v appear_v most_o apparent_a sign_n and_o token_n of_o love_n and_o kindness_n towards_o the_o people_n and_o of_o common_a good_a so_o justin_n principio_fw-la rerum_fw-la gentium_fw-la nationumque_fw-la imperium_fw-la penes_fw-la reges_fw-la erat_fw-la quos_fw-la ad_fw-la fastigium_fw-la huius_fw-la majestatis_fw-la non_fw-la ambitio_fw-la popularis_fw-la sed_fw-la spectata_fw-la inter_fw-la bonos_fw-es moderatio_fw-la provehebat_fw-la whereby_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o paternal_a and_o hereditary_a empery_n subscribe_v and_o be_v subservient_fw-fr to_o virtue_n and_o to_o the_o right_n of_o nation_n which_o original_a of_o kingly_a dominion_n both_o reason_n and_o cause_n be_v most_o especial_o natural_a for_o which_o very_a cause_n and_o reason_n man_n do_v first_o assemble_v and_o agree_v on_o a_o government_n not_o that_o one_o shall_v insult_v and_o domineer_v over_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o whosoever_o do_v injure_v another_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o law_n and_o a_o judge_n among_o they_o for_o the_o defence_n and_o recompense_v the_o injure_a primus_fw-la rex_fw-la agis_n ab_fw-la ephoris_n est_fw-la morte_fw-la mulctatus_fw-la 192._o ob._n rex_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la unus_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o unicus_fw-la if_o so_o than_o many_o that_o be_v king_n of_o england_n be_v not_o to_o let_v pass_v many_o of_o the_o saxon_n who_o have_v many_o peer_n in_o their_o government_n either_o son_n or_o brother_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o hen._n ii_o of_o the_o norman_a race_n reign_v with_o his_o son._n consentire_fw-la vultis_fw-la de_fw-la habendo_fw-la ipsum_fw-la regem_fw-la 193._o quod_fw-la opus_fw-la non_fw-la foret_fw-la si_fw-la regnum_fw-la jure_fw-la esset_fw-la haereditarium_fw-la apud_fw-la reges_fw-la usurpatio_fw-la pro_fw-la jure_fw-la saepissime_fw-la obtinet_fw-la in_o the_o creation_n of_o our_o king_n the_o archbishop_n ask_v the_o people_n four_o time_n consentire_fw-la vultis_fw-la de_fw-la habendo_fw-la ipsum_fw-la regem_fw-la after_o the_o roman_a custom_n vultis_fw-la jubetis_fw-la hunc_fw-la regnare_fw-la of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o need_n if_o the_o king_n have_v a_o absolute_a independent_a right_n of_o inheritance_n therefore_o as_o william_n the_o conqueror_n take_v a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n from_o the_o people_n after_o the_o battle_n of_o hastings_n so_o the_o people_n take_v his_o oath_n that_o he_o will_v keep_v faith_n with_o they_o etc._n etc._n after_o which_o when_o he_o break_v his_o faith_n with_o the_o people_n they_o take_v arm_n again_o then_o he_o most_o solemn_o swear_v again_o that_o he_o will_v observe_v and_o keep_v the_o ancient_a law_n of_o england_n if_o he_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o it_o be_v not_o jure_fw-la belli_fw-la but_o jure_fw-la perjurii_fw-la and_o when_o he_o die_v he_o declare_v neminem_fw-la anglici_fw-la regni_fw-la eonstituo_fw-la haeredem_fw-la lib._n cadomens_n inde_fw-la jus_o belli_fw-la &_o jus_o haereditarium_fw-la cum_fw-la ipso_fw-la mortuo_fw-la gulielmo_n sepultum_fw-la est_fw-la rex_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la facere_fw-la injuriam_fw-la quod_fw-la scelerate_v interpretantur_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la injuria_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la rex_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la non_fw-la punitur_fw-la if_o it_o be_v demand_v by_o what_o authority_n king_n may_v be_v indict_v and_o censure_v it_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n by_o the_o same_o man_n and_o the_o same_o law_n that_o delegated_a their_o power_n to_o create_v they_o king_n and_o that_o by_o the_o selfsame_a reason_n king_n have_v no_o power_n but_o what_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o they_o must_v have_v power_n over_o king_n and_o by_o the_o law_n of_o st._n edward_n king_n not_o govern_v righteous_o lose_v the_o very_a name_n of_o king_n and_o it_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o king._n it_o be_v never_o to_o be_v forget_v
the_o manner_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o write_v it_o in_o a_o book_n which_o book_n say_v the_o hebrew_n doctor_n the_o king_n either_o tear_v or_o burn_v that_o they_o may_v more_o free_o tyrannize_v though_o the_o pulpit_n do_v not_o march_v quatuor_fw-la pedibus_fw-la along_o with_o leviathan_n in_o his_o dogma_n of_o arbitrary_a power_n in_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o quod_fw-la libet_fw-la licet_fw-la in_o the_o twenty_o chapter_n of_o his_o second_o part_n and_o elsewhere_o sparsim_fw-la yet_o they_o go_v hand_n in_o hand_n with_o he_o thus_o far_o that_o if_o king_n do_v act_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o of_o man_n yet_o they_o be_v responsible_a and_o accountable_a to_o none_o but_o to_o god_n himself_o whereas_o there_o be_v not_o one_o plain_a text_n or_o syllable_n in_o the_o whole_a bible_n maugre_o all_o false_a gloss_n that_o conclude_v any_o thing_n for_o king_n be_v unaccountable_a unto_o human_a judgement_n or_o that_o they_o have_v a_o absolute_a power_n or_o divine_a prerogative_n so_o that_o in_o sum_n the_o pulpit_n and_o leviathan_n be_v so_o far_o agree_v as_o to_o dogmatise_v lie_n and_o false_a doctrine_n for_o to_o justify_v that_o king_n maugre_o all_o mutual_a and_o reciprocal_a law_n pact_n and_o covenant_n may_v act_v and_o govern_v how_o they_o please_v and_o to_o justify_v and_o assert_v that_o they_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o govern_v but_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o man_n but_o yet_o if_o they_o do_v not_o they_o be_v notwithstanding_o responsible_a and_o accountable_a to_o none_o on_o earth_n but_o to_o god_n only_o for_o their_o so_o do_v which_o in_o truth_n differ_v in_o their_o consequence_n no_o more_o than_o herring-man_n do_v from_o fisherman_n and_o both_o stink_n in_o the_o nostril_n both_o of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o good_a man_n as_o destructive_a to_o the_o well_o be_v and_o good_a government_n of_o all_o human_a society_n and_o have_v no_o sound_a foundation_n in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o nature_n or_o of_o reason_n but_o be_v contrary_a to_o they_o all_o for_o sans_o doubt_n they_o that_o have_v authority_n to_o give_v and_o apply_v power_n to_o this_o or_o that_o person_n have_v authority_n also_o to_o censure_v his_o action_n against_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n 1._o self-preservation_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o dear_a and_o which_o nature_n seek_v by_o all_o mean_n and_o endeavour_n to_o preserve_v as_o inviolable_a be_v common_a to_o a_o man_n with_o all_o other_o animal_n if_o you_o tread_v but_o upon_o a_o worm_n it_o will_v turn_v and_o if_o it_o have_v a_o sting_n or_o a_o fangue_n or_o a_o poison_n have_v at_o you_o 2._o then_o whatsoever_o may_v conduce_v to_o its_o other_o happiness_n of_o its_o well-being_n it_o labour_v to_o obtain_v they_o and_o to_o avoid_v the_o contrary_a and_o to_o hate_v and_o revenge_v the_o opposer_n so_o that_o vim_o vi_fw-la repellere_fw-la be_v as_o natural_a to_o man_n as_o to_o all_o other_o animal_n other_o law_n of_o natural_a consequence_n implant_v and_o graft_v in_o he_o in_o his_o first_o creation_n for_o the_o better_a reglement_n of_o community_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o to_o do_v good_a to_o all_o to_o hurt_v no_o innocent_n to_o keep_v covenant_n promise_n and_o contract_v faithful_o to_o contribute_v their_o utmost_a to_o procure_v the_o happiness_n of_o the_o whole_a of_o that_o kingdom_n that_o commonwealth_n or_o that_o society_n or_o community_n whereof_o they_o be_v member_n all_o which_o be_v utter_o confound_v and_o destroy_v by_o such_o leviathan_n pulpit_n doctrine_n 3._o it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o man_n and_o nation_n for_o where_o ever_o there_o be_v law_n between_o king_n and_o people_n wherein_o salus_n populi_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v the_o supreme_a law_n for_o that_o god_n make_v the_o whole_a creation_n not_o only_o for_o the_o necessity_n but_o for_o the_o delight_n also_o of_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n in_o general_n and_o equal_o without_o respect_n of_o person_n solemn_o make_v and_o swear_v unto_o by_o mutual_a consent_n there_o they_o do_v mutual_o reciprocal_o and_o solemn_o bind_v each_o other_o and_o the_o sword_n place_v in_o the_o magistrate_n hand_n be_v not_o as_o the_o material_a sword_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o alexander_n not_o to_o untie_v but_o to_o cut_v the_o trace_n of_o that_o fatal_a gordian_a chariot_n but_o the_o establish_a law_n be_v the_o true_a sword_n to_o which_o both_o king_n and_o people_n must_v submit_v and_o be_v responsible_a if_o otherwise_o make_v of_o law_n be_v but_o leonis_fw-la catulum_fw-la alere_fw-la vid._n eras_n adag_n p._n 1._o 709._o for_o as_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o the_o sword_n of_o magistrate_n be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o man_n all_o which_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o mankind_n be_v utter_o destroy_v if_o this_o doctrine_n be_v good_a doctrine_n oath_n between_o king_n and_o people_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o that_o between_o rahab_n and_o the_o spy_n which_o if_o not_o perform_v by_o she_o they_o be_v to_o be_v quit_v of_o the_o oath_n which_o she_o have_v make_v they_o to_o swear_v for_o king_n though_o in_o title_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o law_n and_o in_o many_o prerogative_n they_o be_v singulis_fw-la majores_fw-la yet_o in_o the_o main_a they_o be_v universis_fw-la minores_fw-la the_o reason_n be_v irrefrigable_a for_o that_o the_o people_n make_v king_n and_o not_o king_n the_o people_n and_o the_o like_a reason_n christ_n be_v the_o everlasting_a head_n of_o the_o church_n because_o christ_n make_v and_o ordain_v the_o church_n to_o be_v his_o peculiar_a people_n and_o not_o the_o church_n he_o the_o head_n of_o they_o in_o paternal_a government_n which_o be_v indisputable_a there_o the_o father_n beget_v the_o child_n and_o not_o the_o child_n the_o father_n and_o they_o owe_v he_o obedience_n though_o morose_n and_o bitter_a to_o they_o yet_o if_o he_o prove_v a_o tyrant_n over_o they_o their_o obligation_n to_o he_o be_v cancel_v and_o if_o he_o murder_v any_o of_o they_o he_o himself_o shall_v suffer_v death_n nature_n give_v father_n to_o the_o people_n but_o the_o people_n make_v king_n to_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o king_n be_v constitute_v for_o the_o people_n and_o not_o the_o people_n for_o king_n some_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v urge_v though_o of_o very_o little_a force_n when_o bring_v to_o the_o test_n and_o well_o examine_v as_o first_o let_v my_o sentence_n come_v forth_o from_o thy_o presence_n let_v thy_o eye_n behold_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v equal_a psalm_n 17._o 2._o what_o have_v this_o text_n to_o do_v more_o particular_o with_o the_o government_n between_o king_n and_o their_o people_n than_o with_o all_o other_o trouble_v and_o affliction_n that_o mankind_n in_o general_n be_v subject_a unto_o etc._n etc._n be_v as_o applicable_a to_o every_o particular_a person_n persecute_v and_o in_o trouble_n as_o to_o king_n david_n here_o in_o confidence_n of_o his_o integrity_n crave_v defence_n of_o god_n against_o his_o enemy_n and_o so_o may_v any_o body_n else_o but_o it_o prove_v nothing_o that_o king_n if_o they_o oppress_v their_o subject_n shall_v be_v accountable_a to_o none_o but_o to_o god_n almighty_a it_o do_v prove_v that_o any_o oppress_a king_n or_o not_o king_n may_v appeal_v unto_o god_n to_o plead_v their_o cause_n and_o protect_v and_o defend_v they_o and_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a so_o to_o pray_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o put_v to_o their_o own_o help_a hand_n to_o relieve_v themselves_o by_o any_o lawful_a mean_n and_o endeavour_n and_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o bless_v their_o endeavour_n and_o so_o by_o their_o prayer_n and_o endeavour_n to_o cooperate_v together_o it_o be_v a_o appeal_n to_o god_n to_o judge_n between_o he_o and_o his_o enemy_n and_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a nay_o the_o duty_n of_o all_o state_n and_o kingdom_n to_o make_v the_o like_a appeal_n and_o supplication_n to_o god_n almighty_a it_o be_v probable_a that_o david_n write_v this_o psalm_n when_o he_o be_v trouble_v and_o persecute_v by_o saul_n even_o after_o he_o be_v anoint_v of_o god_n and_o because_o he_o do_v then_o make_v supplication_n and_o appeal_n to_o jonathan_n for_o his_o life_n if_o there_o be_v iniquity_n in_o i_o slay_v i_o thyself_o for_o why_o shall_v thou_o bring_v i_o to_o thy_o father_n will_v it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o court_n be_v to_o be_v make_v to_o jonathan_n only_o i_o doubt_v not_o this_o be_v a_o great_a example_n and_o encouragement_n to_o those_o that_o be_v false_o accuse_v to_o appeal_v to_o god_n by_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n for_o help_n and_o the_o reason_n that_o follow_v be_v great_a viz._n thy_o eye_n behold_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v